exclude_v the_o baptism_n of_o those_o heretic_n which_o do_v not_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n but_o of_o the_o rest_n thus_o he_o dispute_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reiterated_a but_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n be_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n the_o assumption_n he_o proove_v by_o this_o medium_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v plain_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o baptism_n with_o the_o saint_n thus_o s._n augustine_n determine_v this_o point_n by_o the_o scripture_n such_o be_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n reply_n reply_n 9_o fast_v be_v a_o christian_a duty_n needful_a for_o our_o salvation_n such_o be_v not_o the_o fast_a of_o lent_n the_o 1._o the_o on_o mat._n 1._o rhemist_n do_v account_v it_o to_o be_v a_o write_a doctrine_n ground_v upon_o scriture_n hosius_n the_o cardinal_n reckon_v it_o among_o caeremonijs_fw-la among_o hosius_n in_o confess_v petrocovien_n c._n 4._o de_fw-la caeremonijs_fw-la the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o jesuite_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o for_o this_o he_o cit_v s._n hierome_n say_v marcel_n say_v hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la marcel_n we_o fast_a one_o lend_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n this_o he_o call_v apostolical_a not_o because_o it_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o because_o it_o have_v gain_v some_o space_n of_o time_n for_o the_o observe_n of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n for_o s._n augustine_n ascribe_v the_o invention_n of_o it_o 119._o it_o aug._n epist_n 119._o unto_o the_o church_n and_o though_o it_o be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o s._n hierome_n do_v not_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o doctrinal_a tradition_n for_o vrbicam_fw-la for_o doctrine_n ecclesiae_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la domus_fw-la dei_fw-la in_fw-la librorum_fw-la repe_v ritur_fw-la plenitudine_fw-la divinorum_fw-la hierom._n in_o epist_n 155._o ad_fw-la paulam_fw-la vrbicam_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v find_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o divine_a book_n say_v s._n hierome_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v then_o a_o ritual_a tradition_n and_o such_o be_v impertinent_a to_o this_o question_n such_o also_o be_v the_o commemoration_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a 126._o reply_v pag._n 126._o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n witness_n s._n chrysostome_n phi_n chrysostome_n chrysost_o hom_n 3._o in_o phi_n it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o venerable_a mystery_n a_o remembrance_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o the_o decease_a they_o know_v well_o that_o great_a comfort_n and_o profit_n do_v from_o hence_o arise_v unto_o the_o dead_a 10._o the_o private_a conceit_n of_o every_o doctor_n be_v not_o the_o public_a tenant_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o in_o this_o point_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o which_o as_o most_o of_o the_o father_n differ_v among_o themselves_o so_o s._n chrysostome_n dissent_v from_o the_o most_o of_o they_o it_o be_v his_o opinion_n that_o wicked_a liver_n that_o such_o as_o be_v not_o and_o will_v not_o be_v baptize_v may_v be_v pray_v for_o that_o such_o as_o be_v in_o hell_n may_v receive_v some_o benefit_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n concern_v such_o write_v upon_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v 3._o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &c_n &c_n chryso_v in_o philip_n hom._n 3._o let_v we_o weep_v for_o such_o let_v we_o succour_v they_o according_a to_o our_o power_n let_v we_o find_v out_o some_o help_n for_o they_o little_a indeed_o but_o yet_o such_o as_o may_v relieve_v they_o how_o and_o after_o what_o manner_n by_o pray_v for_o they_o châysostome_n deserve_v to_o be_v censure_v for_o this_o for_o gregory_n in_o his_o moral_n say_v 16_o say_v greg._n moral_a in_o job_n l._n 34._o c._n 16_o we_o may_v aswell_o pray_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n as_o for_o such_o and_o it_o be_v the_o general_a tenant_n of_o the_o roman_a doctor_n that_o only_o those_o be_v holpen_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n who_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o be_v dead_a go_v into_o purgatory_n and_o not_o unto_o hell_n for_o thy_o full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o point_n read_v the_o article_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v most_o learned_o handle_v by_o the_o most_o reverend_a primate_n unto_o which_o i_o will_v add_v this_o we_o distinguish_v the_o point_n itself_o of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a from_o the_o practice_n of_o pray_v for_o they_o at_o any_o set_a time_n and_o namely_o at_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v the_o divine_a mystery_n this_o be_v but_o a_o custom_n or_o panarij_fw-la or_o epiphan_n in_o fine_a panarij_fw-la ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o epiphanius_n of_o this_o s._n chrysostome_n speak_v and_o such_o thing_n be_v as_o impertinent_o object_v by_o the_o jesuite_n as_o this_o be_v false_o affirm_v by_o s._n chrysostome_n such_o also_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o baptise_v infant_n before_o they_o do_v actual_o believe_v for_o s._n augustine_n say_v 126_o reply_v pag._n 126_o 23._o 126_o aug._n de_fw-fr genes_n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr l._n 10._o c._n 23._o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o baptise_v of_o infant_n be_v not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v believe_v unless_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o origen_n say_v 6._o say_v orig._n in_o rom._n c._n 6._o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n this_o tradition_n to_o confer_v baptism_n even_o unto_o child_n 11._o none_o but_o a_o anabaptist_n will_v hold_v this_o opinion_n that_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v not_o warrant_v by_o scripture_n if_o he_o have_v learn_v the_o catechism_n of_o trent_n or_o if_o he_o have_v read_v bellarmine_n first_o book_n and_o eight_o chapter_n de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la he_o will_v not_o have_v insert_v this_o into_o his_o catalogue_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n that_o which_o he_o produce_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n overthrow_v all_o that_o which_o he_o with_o so_o much_o toil_n in_o this_o and_o in_o the_o former_a section_n have_v labour_v for_o to_o build_v for_o if_o this_o or_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v unless_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n how_o then_o can_v ecclesiastical_a tradition_n be_v believe_v or_o how_o can_v they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o credit_n and_o authority_n with_o the_o write_a word_n we_o distinguish_v between_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o practice_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o likewise_o between_o doctrine_n express_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o sound_a inference_n deduce_v from_o they_o s._n augustine_n prove_v the_o doctrine_n by_o diverse_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o this_o 27._o this_o august_n de_fw-fr peceat_fw-la merit_n l._n 1._o c._n 27._o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n by_o that_o 8._o that_o idem_fw-la de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apostol_n serm._n 8._o he_o shall_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o 24._o the_o idem_fw-la de_fw-la bapt._n cont_n donat._n l._n 4._o c._n 24._o circumcision_n of_o infant_n as_o for_o the_o custom_n or_o practice_n whereof_o s._n augustine_n speak_v we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o child_n baptize_v neither_o do_v we_o read_v that_o any_o apostle_n that_o any_o old_a man_n or_o widow_n or_o virgin_n be_v baptize_v but_o yet_o the_o general_a precept_n and_o practice_v of_o baptise_v the_o species_n under_o which_o these_o individuall_n be_v contain_v be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o their_o baptism_n and_o this_o custom_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v augustin_n believe_v nec_fw-la omnino_fw-la âredenda_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la apostolica_fw-la osse_fw-la traditio_fw-la esses_fw-la for_o esse_fw-la be_v creep_v into_o the_o text_n in_o s._n augustin_n to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o be_v a_o practice_n according_a to_o the_o write_a word_n which_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n origen_n call_v it_o a_o tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n he_o prove_v it_o by_o this_o text_n luc._n text_n origen_n hom._n 14._o in_o luc._n unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n stupleton_n teach_v the_o same_o that_o we_o teach_v concern_v this_o and_o sundry_a other_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o 1._o that_o principia_fw-la in_o scripture_n aperte_fw-la posita_fw-la quae_fw-la plurimorum_fw-la alioâum_fw-la articulorum_fw-la âunt_fw-la âontes_fw-la &_o seminaria_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-la duabns_fw-la âatuâs_fw-la &_o una_fw-la persona_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la de_fw-fr necessitate_v baptizandi_fw-la parvulââ_n etc._n etc._n &_o de_fw-fr aâis_fw-la multis_fw-la dogmatihus_fw-la non_fw-la aperte_fw-la scriptis_fw-la âde_fw-la tamen_fw-la firmiter_fw-la deductis_fw-la stapleton_n relect_a princip_n fidei_fw-la cont
great_a sin_n for_o a_o priest_n to_o be_v marry_v to_o a_o wife_n then_o to_o live_v in_o fornication_n with_o many_o whore_n that_o it_o be_v worse_o for_o a_o layman_n not_o to_o make_v his_o auricular_a confession_n once_o in_o the_o year_n then_o to_o live_v in_o sin_n all_o the_o year_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o eat_v flesh_n in_o lent_n then_o to_o be_v drunken_a in_o the_o lent_n and_o to_o break_v a_o saint_n day_n than_o the_o lord_n day_n these_o tradition_n be_v contrary_a and_o repugnant_a to_o the_o truâh_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 128._o scripture_n chrysostoâe_n and_o hierome_n answer_v sect._n 3_o diâis_fw-la â_o repây_a pag._n 128._o three_o that_o our_o tradition_n do_v not_o any_o way_n derogate_v from_o the_o fullness_n or_o perfection_n of_o the_o write_a word_n 3._o tradition_n be_v addition_n to_o the_o write_a word_n if_o they_o be_v so_o than_o they_o derogate_v some_o way_n from_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o for_o that_o that_o be_v perfect_a need_v no_o addition_n and_o this_o addition_n of_o unwritten_a doctrine_n to_o the_o write_a word_n not_o only_o cross_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o general_a command_n which_o forbid_v 3â_n forbid_v âevel_n ââ_o ââ_o âeuter_n 12_o 3â_n addition_n and_o substraction_n but_o likewise_o derogate_v from_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o covenant_n than_o 15._o than_o gal_n â_o 15._o no_o man_n must_v add_v unto_o it_o philip._n it_o chrysost_n hom_n 12_o in_o philip._n if_o it_o be_v a_o canon_n it_o admit_v neither_o addition_n nor_o substraction_n if_o it_o shall_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o canon_n say_v châysostome_n they_o rather_o bring_v unto_o we_o the_o whole_a compliment_n of_o 1â8_n reply_v pag._n 1â8_n scripture_n as_o this_o example_n follow_v will_n most_o plain_o declare_v his_o majesty_n send_v over_o into_o thâs_n kingdom_n our_o of_o his_o trusty_a counselor_n wiâh_v his_o royal_a letter_n unto_o his_o subject_n where_o in_o he_o prâscribâtâ_n unto_o they_o not_o only_o express_v law_n himself_o but_o also_o command_v they_o to_o fulfil_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v enjoin_v they_o by_o his_o say_a counsellor_n to_o who_o he_o have_v impart_v his_o whole_a will_n and_o pleasure_n can_v it_o be_v say_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o the_o subject_n of_o ireland_n by_o obey_v unto_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v command_v by_o the_o say_a ambassador_n do_v derogate_v any_o thing_n unto_o the_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n of_o his_o majesty_n letter_n this_o his_o royal_a argument_n like_o goliaââ_n sword_n shall_v undo_v himself_o be_v it_o to_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o royal_a â_z or_o the_o grand_a commission_n and_o the_o church_n be_v the_o trusty_a frâânâ_n the_o ambassador_n or_o commissioner_n now_o i_o demand_v 1._o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o commissioner_n or_o of_o the_o ambassador_n from_o his_o commission_n or_o his_o letter_n and_o not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o commission_n or_o letter_n from_o the_o commissioner_n or_o ambassador_n so_o if_o this_o similitude_n hold_v the_o authority_n or_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n be_v from_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o the_o authority_n or_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o âhe_n church_n 2._o may_v not_o a_o ambassador_n as_o many_o have_v go_v beyond_o his_o commission_n and_o deliver_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o trust_v commit_v to_o he_o and_o so_o become_v a_o impostor_n so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v go_v beyond_o her_o commission_n &_o have_v deliver_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o write_a word_n and_o in_o this_o she_o be_v a_o grand_a impostor_n similitude_n be_v a_o weak_a foundation_n to_o uphold_v this_o pillar_n of_o tradition_n upon_o which_o the_o weight_n of_o all_o other_o controversy_n do_v depend_v especial_o such_o a_o similitude_n as_o this_o which_o want_v foot_n to_o uphold_v itself_o 1._o king_n of_o themselves_o know_v not_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v fit_a for_o their_o subject_n neither_o can_v they_o foresee_v what_o passage_n will_v happen_v between_o their_o commissioner_n and_o their_o people_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v force_v to_o leave_v many_o thing_n to_o the_o discretion_n of_o their_o ambassador_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o king_n of_o king_n he_o have_v reveal_v all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o his_o people_n to_o the_o penman_n of_o scripture_n and_o they_o according_a to_o that_o revelation_n have_v write_v all_o thing_n 1_o thing_n aristot_n de_fw-fr rhetor._n l._n 1._o c._n 1_o the_o best_a law_n say_v aristotle_n determine_v all_o thing_n themselves_o and_o leave_v very_o little_a to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o judge_n the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v the_o best_a and_o the_o most_o perfect_a law_n how_o then_o can_v there_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a thing_n leave_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o the_o law_n of_o kingdom_n be_v subject_a to_o mutation_n and_o addition_n so_o that_o his_o majesty_n may_v send_v over_o commissioner_n for_o this_o purpose_n but_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v a_o 6._o a_o revel_v 14._o 6._o eternal_a gospel_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 3._o be_v jude_n vers_fw-la 3._o at_o once_o deliver_v unto_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o be_v here_o confess_v by_o the_o jesuite_n in_o these_o letter_n it_o be_v true_a he_o have_v express_v his_o law_n and_o commandment_n himself_o yet_o forasmuch_o as_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o manifest_o therein_o describe_v that_o our_o feeble_a understanding_n may_v attain_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o heavenly_a will_n by_o the_o same_o alone_a he_o himself_o command_v we_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o his_o church_n can_v any_o protestant_a say_v more_o god_n himself_o have_v express_v his_o law_n and_o commandment_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o again_o all_o thing_n be_v therein_o describe_v though_o not_o so_o manifest_o this_o i_o confess_v do_v not_o derogate_v from_o the_o perfection_n of_o scripture_n but_o it_o over-throweth_a the_o jesuite_n and_o his_o cause_n because_o all_o thing_n be_v therein_o describe_v and_o there_o be_v only_o require_v the_o interpretation_n of_o thing_n obscure_a which_o no_o protestant_n deny_v because_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o therein_o so_o manifest_o describe_v 4._o the_o truth_n have_v convince_v the_o jesuite_n yet_o malice_n have_v set_v his_o wit_n a_o rave_a and_o his_o tongue_n a_o rail_n on_o his_o adversary_n of_o most_o gross_a vanity_n of_o great_a madness_n of_o ostentation_n and_o of_o not_o touch_v the_o point_n at_o all_o but_o who_o can_v with_o patience_n endure_v to_o hear_v this_o animal_n bray_v thus_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v touch_v to_o the_o quick_a and_o that_o make_v he_o kick_v as_o if_o he_o be_v mad_a if_o he_o be_v not_o it_o be_v because_o his_o own_o conscience_n be_v past_a feel_n and_o yet_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o a_o other_o man_n conscience_n he_o that_o cit_v scripture_n more_o for_o show_v then_o to_o purpose_n tax_v his_o answerer_n for_o allege_v so_o little_a scripturâââ_n ãâã_d 119._o reply_v pag._n 119._o and_o to_o so_o little_a purpose_n for_o bring_v in_o his_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n so_o scant_o who_o sometime_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o no_o thing_n but_o scripture_n the_o roman_a tradition_n monger_n have_v learn_v the_o trick_n of_o the_o jewish_a cabalist_n to_o call_v those_o of_o the_o adverse_a part_n scripturian_o or_o man_n puff_v up_o with_o scripture_n call_v they_o as_o you_o will_v i_o have_v rather_o be_v fill_v with_o scripture_n then_o with_o the_o puft-paste_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o puftcrust_n of_o humane_a invention_n neither_o be_v the_o most_o reverend_a primate_n to_o be_v blame_v for_o allege_v in_o this_o point_n but_o a_o few_o text_n of_o scripture_n because_o brevity_n be_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o intend_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o worke._n if_o he_o allege_v but_o one_o text_n to_o the_o purpose_n chrysostome_n plead_v aââotheâ_n 1_o chrysoâââ_n hom_n â6_n ad_fw-la ââpul_n aââotheâ_n his_o excusetâ_n what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o multitude_n i_o have_v rather_o have_v one_o pâââious_a ãâã_d thââ_n many_o half_a ãâã_d and_o i_o think_v a_o judicious_a reader_n will_v like_v better_o of_o his_o little_a to_o great_a purpose_n then_o of_o the_o jesuite_n great_a deal_n to_o little_a purpose_n but_o it_o be_v to_o little_a purpose_n for_o first_o that_o text_n of_o matth._n 15._o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n 119._o reply_v pag._n 119._o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n be_v far_o from_o prove_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o see_v that_o by_o it_o only_o such_o humane_a traditious_a be_v reprove_v aâ_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 5._o jewish_a tradition_n
with_o the_o jesuite_n in_o theodoret_n we_o meet_v with_o these_o kind_n of_o speech_n 1._o speech_n theodor._n dialog_n 1._o by_o the_o answer_n answer_n scripture_n alone_a be_o i_o persuade_v 45._o persuade_v idem_fw-la in_o genes_n q_o 45._o we_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v pass_v in_o silence_n but_o rest_n in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v unwritten_a tradition_n be_v not_o pass_v in_o silence_n by_o the_o 145._o reply_v pag._n 145._o scripture_n neither_o âought_v you_o to_o gainsay_v they_o if_o you_o will_v be_v persuade_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o true_o we_o may_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o theodoret_n if_o we_o note_v well_o what_o he_o record_v in_o his_o history_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n condemn_v the_o arian_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n 15._o as_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v not_o scripture_n so_o they_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n i_o confess_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o pass_v they_o in_o silence_n no_o more_o than_o it_o do_v judaâ_n but_o it_o be_v to_o condemn_v they_o the_o scripture_n do_v contain_v some_o tradition_n such_o be_v write_v tradition_n and_o such_o be_v the_o tradition_n establish_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o which_o the_o arian_n dispute_v this_o jesuite_n have_v gather_v his_o basket_n of_o scrap_n from_o bellarmine_n full_a table_n out_o of_o who_o he_o may_v have_v learn_v to_o cite_v the_o place_n aswell_o as_o the_o word_n the_o word_n be_v these_o 1._o these_o theodor._n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o by_o unwritten_a word_n yet_o some_o book_n read_v it_o by_o write_a word_n pious_o understand_v they_o be_v condemn_v it_o be_v not_o material_a how_o we_o read_v it_o either_o by_o write_a word_n or_o by_o unwritten_a word_n for_o our_o question_n be_v not_o of_o unwritten_a word_n but_o of_o unwritten_a doctrine_n the_o unwritten_a word_n be_v coessential_a or_o consubstantial_a which_o word_n though_o they_o be_v not_o write_v letter_n for_o letter_n in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o doctrine_n signify_v by_o those_o word_n be_v write_v in_o other_o word_n as_o we_o have_v oft_o show_v and_o once_o more_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v athanasius_n be_v one_o of_o the_o nicânâ_n council_n and_o the_o word_n cite_v out_o of_o theodoret_n be_v take_v out_o of_o afros_fw-la of_o athanas_n in_o epistol_n ad_fw-la afros_fw-la athanasius_n and_o yet_o the_o jesuite_n have_v 119._o have_v pag_n 119._o former_o declare_v unto_o we_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o holy_a father_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o discovery_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n so_o that_o by_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o holy_a father_n the_o arian_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o scripture_n aswell_o as_o by_o unwritten_a word_n the_o word_n be_v unwritten_a and_o yet_o the_o doctrine_n write_v theodoret_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuite_n add_v this_o out_o of_o athanasiââ_n that_o they_o of_o that_o famous_a council_n gather_v testimony_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o they_o condemn_v the_o arian_n add_v unto_o this_o the_o grave_a oration_n which_o the_o great_a &_o learned_a emperor_n consâantine_n make_v in_o that_o council_n in_o which_o he_o conclude_v with_o this_o exhortation_n unto_o which_o they_o all_o yield_v 7._o yield_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d theodor._n l._n 1._o c_o 7._o let_v we_o resolve_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n by_o the_o divine_a scripture_n in_o those_o thing_n say_v s._n 146._o s._n august_n de_fw-fr doct_n christian_n l._n â_o c._n 9_o reply_v pag._n 146._o augustine_n which_o be_v plain_o lay_v down_n in_o the_o scripture_n all_o those_o thing_n be_v find_v which_o appertain_v to_o faith_n and_o direction_n of_o life_n can_n you_o infer_v therefore_o that_o tradition_n be_v not_o necessary_a answer_n answer_n and_o may_v you_o not_o infer_v also_o that_o therefore_o your_o doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n be_v as_o needless_a s._n augustine_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n not_o of_o all_o and_o every_o point_n in_o particular_a but_o only_o of_o such_o point_n as_o be_v general_o necessary_a for_o every_o one_o to_o know_v as_o the_o creed_n the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o the_o like_a 16._o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o sound_a inference_n differ_v as_o much_o as_o truth_n and_o error_n sound_a inference_n be_v plain_o though_o not_o express_o word_n for_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o for_o unwritten_a tradition_n there_o be_v neither_o plain_a nor_o express_v warrant_n in_o they_o you_o declare_v s._n augustine_n meaning_n contrary_a to_o his_o mind_n he_o speak_v of_o all_o thing_n you_o of_o some_o thing_n appertain_v to_o all_o person_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n that_o in_o some_o place_n it_o be_v plain_a in_o other_o place_n obscure_a you_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o some_o but_o noâ_n for_o every_o one_o to_o know_v he_o say_v in_o the_o plain_a place_n all_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o faith_n be_v lâide_v down_o you_o say_v all_o plain_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n be_v there_o not_o a_o plain_a difference_n between_o your_o interpretation_n and_o s._n augustine_n text_n we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n necessary_a &_o some_o thing_n not_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v whosoever_o will_v be_v save_v say_v athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n which_o be_v sing_v in_o your_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o hold_v the_o cutholicks_n faith_n other_o thing_n there_o be_v which_o be_v not_o necessary_a scrap_n necessary_a athanas_n ad_fw-la scrap_n we_o must_v know_v that_o god_n iâ_n and_o that_o be_v be_v a_o rewarder_n but_o how_o we_o need_v not_o know_v say_v the_o same_o father_n and_o s._n augustine_n write_v of_o the_o question_n how_o the_o soul_n become_v taint_v with_o originals_n sin_v say_v ultimo_fw-la say_v credo_fw-la etiâm_fw-la divinorum_fw-la âloqâoruâ_n clarisâimâ_fw-la authoritââ_n esset_fw-la si_fw-la âoâo_fw-la illââ_n sine_fw-la dispendio_fw-la promise_v salutiâ_n ignorare_fw-la âon_n possââ_n august_n l._n â_o de_fw-fr peccat_fw-la merit_n c._n ultimo_fw-la i_o believe_v that_o the_o scripturââ_n will_v likewise_o declare_v this_o plain_o if_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o which_o a_o man_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a without_o the_o less_o of_o salvaâiââ_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v never_o know_v to_o s._n augustine_n neither_o do_v we_o receive_v it_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v paint_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o and_o those_o shall_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o there_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n not_o necessary_a for_o all_o but_o only_o for_o some_o and_o those_o shall_v not_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n 5_o scripture_n âphes_n 4._o 5_o there_o be_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n as_o one_o lord_n of_o priest_n and_o people_n and_o one_o baptism_n for_o all_o so_o but_o one_o faith_n for_o all_o even_o a_o 1â_n a_o verse_n 1â_n unity_n of_o faith_n for_o paster_n teacher_n and_o for_o the_o saint_n how_o can_v this_o faith_n be_v catholic_a if_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o all_o his_o only_o answer_n must_v be_v this_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o that_o they_o be_v not_o general_o necessary_a for_o all_o to_o know_v if_o they_o be_v they_o will_v be_v find_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n 4._o scripture_n una_fw-la fideâ_n quia_fw-la unum_fw-la &_o idem_fw-la creditur_fw-la à _fw-la âunctis_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la unde_fw-la catholicadiâtur_fw-la aquin._n in_o ephes_n 4._o there_o be_v one_o faith_n say_v aquinas_n because_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v believe_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v âalled_v catholickâ_n there_o be_v no_o specifical_a but_o only_o a_o gradual_a difference_n between_o the_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n require_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o scripture_n make_v both_o the_o man_n of_o god_n and_o a_o godly_a man_n perfect_a and_o thorough_o furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n this_o answer_n of_o the_o jesuite_n be_v not_o unlike_o that_o answer_n make_v by_o a_o chaplia_n of_o bâshop_n bââners_n unto_o the_o martyr_n hawk_n 1586._o hawk_n fox_n his_o acts._n pag._n 1586._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o salvation_n but_o not_o for_o instruction_n and_o i_o answer_v as_o the_o martyr_n do_v god_n send_v âe_v the_o salvation_n and_o you_o the_o instruction_n if_o in_o the_o thing_n plain_o lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n all_o thing_n be_v find_v which_o be_v general_o necessary_a for_o every_o one_o to_o know_v why_o then_o do_v you_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o 118._o the_o pag._n
p._n 164._o allege_v not_o only_o the_o same_o text_n which_o ancient_a heretic_n allege_v but_o also_o direct_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n when_o s._n augustine_n urge_v maximinus_n the_o arian_n with_o unwritten_a tradition_n he_o receive_v this_o answer_n from_o he_o max._n he_o aug._n l._n 1._o cont_n max._n these_o say_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n may_v not_o be_v receive_v of_o we_o see_v our_o lord_n warn_v we_o do_v say_v without_o cause_n do_v they_o worship_v i_o tââching_v for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o mention_v be_v not_o this_o selfsame_o text_n the_o first_o which_o you_o in_o like_a manner_n produce_v against_o unwritten_a tradition_n 6._o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o urge_v maximinus_n with_o unwritten_a tradition_n they_o dispute_v of_o unwritten_a say_n not_o of_o unwritten_a but_o of_o a_o write_a doctrine_n &_o by_o unwritten_a say_n he_o urge_v he_o wherefore_o we_o say_v for_o ourselves_o it_o be_v a_o direct_o for_o direct_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n we_o allege_v it_o not_o we_o allege_v it_o against_o unwritten_a doctrine_n not_o against_o unwritten_a say_n as_o that_o arian_n do_v and_o we_o receive_v unwritten_a say_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n although_o we_o refuse_v to_o receive_v unwritten_a doctrine_n this_o be_v a_o verbal_a argument_n take_v â_o verbis_fw-la ad_fw-la res_fw-la how_o can_v it_o be_v in_o the_o sâââ_n sensâ_n and_o against_o the_o same_o truth_n when_o we_o receiuâ_n both_o the_o say_n and_o the_o doctrine_n reject_v by_o that_o arian_n irenaus_n and_o tertullian_n do_v open_o make_v it_o know_v that_o the_o valentinian_o gnostic_n and_o mareionits_n condemn_v unwritten_a 156_o reply_v pag._n 156_o tradition_n hilary_n epiphanius_n and_o augustine_n do_v testify_v the_o same_o of_o the_o arian_n s._n basil_n of_o the_o eunomian_o the_o donatist_n plead_v only_o for_o scripture_n deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o tradition_n and_o yet_o s._n augustine_n still_o pursue_v they_o with_o unwritten_a tradition_n 7._o in_o all_o this_o the_o jesuite_n harp_v upon_o three_o string_n 1._o that_o the_o heretic_n do_v plead_v only_o for_o scripture_n 2._o that_o they_o reject_v unwritten_a tradition_n 3._o that_o the_o father_n pursue_v they_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v suppose_v it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o heretic_n do_v plead_v only_o for_o scripture_n be_v they_o therefore_o heretic_n that_o do_v the_o same_o what_o then_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v as_o earnest_a to_o try_v all_o controversy_n by_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o heretic_n be_v this_o make_v man_n heretic_n say_v s._n augustine_n 222._o augustine_n non_fw-la quod_fw-la scripturas_fw-la non_fw-la contemnunt_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la eas_fw-la non_fw-la intelligunt_fw-la aug._n epist_n 222._o not_o because_o they_o fly_v to_o the_o scripture_n but_o because_o they_o understand_v they_o not_o the_o father_n do_v not_o condemn_v the_o heretic_n for_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n but_o as_o we_o haââ_n show_v out_o of_o irenaeus_n &_o tertullian_n for_o speak_v disgraceful_o of_o it_o that_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v know_v out_o of_o scripture_n by_o they_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o tradition_n because_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n theodoâet_n set_v forth_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o heretic_n in_o this_o manner_n haeres_fw-la manner_n s._n vides_fw-la ni_fw-fr petitisè_fw-la scripture_n demonstrationibus_fw-la stultitiam_fw-la svam_fw-la constringinum_fw-la scripturae_fw-la recusant_n &_o scopum_fw-la &_o usum_fw-la si_fw-mi quando_fw-la vero_fw-la putart_n nudum_fw-la aliquod_fw-la effatum_fw-la à _fw-la genuinâ_fw-la recisum_fw-la orationis_fw-la see_v ad_fw-la suum_fw-la propositum_fw-la accommodant_fw-la âuis_fw-la confirmandis_fw-la theodor_n in_o opusc_n count_v vanas_fw-la haeres_fw-la whensoever_o they_o see_v that_o their_o folly_n be_v discover_v by_o demonstration_n take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n than_o they_o deny_v the_o scope_n and_o the_o use_n of_o scripture_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o bare_a say_n which_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o ãâã_d meaning_n may_v serum_n for_o their_o turn_n that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o confirm_v their_o opinion_n yet_o whensoever_o they_o appeal_v unto_o scripture_n the_o father_n accept_v of_o the_o challenge_n and_o âought_v with_o they_o at_o those_o weapon_n arâan_n weapon_n lapidandoâ_n esse_fw-la haereticos_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la argumeâtis_fw-la athan._n orat._n coât_fw-la arâan_n they_o account_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n heretic_n be_v tââe_v stone_v with_o the_o argument_n of_o scripture_n say_v athanasiââ_n mat._n athanasiââ_n sicut_fw-la salâatâr_fw-la uârbo_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la suae_fw-la silentium_fw-la imposuit_fw-la sadducâ_n be_v sic_fw-la âaeient_fw-la christi_fw-la imitatores_fw-la exâmplis_fw-la sârit_fw-la turarum_fw-la quibus_fw-la oportet_fw-la secundum_fw-la sanam_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la omnem_fw-la voâem_fw-la abmââes_fw-la ere_o hâraonis_fw-la origen_n tract_n 23._o in_o mat._n as_o our_o saviour_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o doctrine_n put_v the_o sadducee_n to_o silence_n so_o must_v we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o scripture_n if_o we_o will_v be_v the_o follower_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o which_o according_a unto_o sound_a doctrine_n we_o ought_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o every_o proud_a pharaâh_n say_v origen_n s._n augustine_n do_v not_o reject_v the_o appeal_n of_o the_o donatist_n unto_o scripture_n as_o if_o it_o be_v coraâ_n non_fw-la judice_fw-la but_o commend_v it_o as_o the_o best_a way_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o answer_n unto_o 2d_o unto_o aug._n l._n 5._o contra_fw-la donat._n c._n 2d_o cyprian_n appeal_v in_o the_o same_o point_n unto_o the_o same_o judge_n and_o by_o his_o several_a answer_n to_o the_o donatist_n themselves_o 3._o themselves_o sunt_fw-la libri_fw-la dominici_fw-la quorum_fw-la authoritatiutrique_fw-la consentimus_fw-la ibi_fw-la quaeâanius_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ibi_fw-la discutiamâs_fw-la causam_fw-la nostram_fw-la idââ_n de_fw-la unitat_fw-la âcles_n cap._n 3._o there_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o who_o authority_n we_o both_o submit_v in_o they_o let_v uâ_n seek_v for_o the_o church_n by_o they_o let_v we_o examine_v our_o cause_n and_o again_o in_o his_o six_o chapter_n read_v this_o out_o of_o the_o law_n out_o of_o the_o prophet_n out_o of_o the_o psalm_n cut_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o epistle_n read_v it_o and_o we_o will_v believe_v it_o the_o hope_n of_o prolong_v the_o controversy_n of_o tire_v the_o orthodox_n this_o move_v the_o heretic_n to_o appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n that_o so_o the_o sentence_n may_v not_o final_o pass_v against_o they_o as_o if_o the_o jesuite_n be_v question_v before_o a_o inferior_a judge_n for_o his_o religion_n shall_v appeal_v unto_o his_o majesty_n to_o gain_v time_n thereby_o and_o as_o we_o see_v some_o man_n that_o love_v trouble_v appeal_n from_o court_n to_o court_n to_o vex_v their_o adversary_n though_o their_o cause_n be_v never_o so_o bad_a s._n paul_n ââ_o paul_n act._n â5_n ââ_o appeal_v unto_o caesar_n so_o do_v his_o enemy_n be_v caesar_n therefore_o no_o sufficient_a judge_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o the_o father_n appeal_v unto_o scripture_n so_o do_v the_o heretic_n be_v therefore_o this_o practice_n evil_a or_o be_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o no_o sufficient_a judge_n the_o more_o do_v appeal_v unto_o it_o the_o more_o witness_n there_o be_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o it_o origen_n give_v this_o reason_n why_o the_o tempter_n use_v scripture_n luc._n scripture_n origen_n ãâã_d 3._o in_o luc._n because_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v without_o book_n his_o word_n can_v have_v have_v no_o authority_n you_o may_v aswell_o say_v that_o we_o learn_v this_o doctrine_n from_o the_o devil_n as_o from_o heretic_n it_o be_v a_o truth_n which_o the_o father_n have_v teach_v which_o the_o heretic_n acknowledge_v and_o the_o devil_n believe_v it_o and_o he_o be_v worse_a than_o a_o heretic_n than_o the_o devil_n that_o will_v deny_v it_o to_o the_o second_o i_o answer_v as_o all_o heretic_n reject_v not_o tradition_n so_o all_o that_o reject_v tradition_n be_v not_o heretic_n tradition_n be_v either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a they_o reject_v some_o write_a tradition_n and_o those_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n else_o they_o can_v not_o be_v heretic_n but_o all_o poinis_fw-la of_o faith_n necessary_a for_o all_o to_o know_v as_o the_o â4â_n the_o pag._n â4â_n jesuite_n have_v confess_v be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n he_o name_v the_o valentinian_o guostick_n and_o marcionite_n and_o these_o teach_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n and_o against_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o like_a as_o he_o confess_v again_o the_o arian_n and_o the_o ennomian_o and_o they_o teach_v against_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o for_o the_o donatist_n they_o teach_v against_o the_o unity_n of_o baptism_n all_o these_o we_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v write_v tradition_n reject_v
by_o these_o heretic_n as_o for_o unwritren_a tradition_n doctrine_n not_o teach_v in_o scripture_n but_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n they_o reject_v they_o not_o they_o lay_v the_o foundation_n and_o upon_o their_o foundation_n you_o have_v build_v this_o pillar_n of_o your_o religion_n this_o tower_n and_o fort_n of_o your_o salvation_n this_o be_v not_o only_o discover_v by_o irenaeââ_n and_o tertullian_n but_o likewise_o i_o may_v add_v s._n augustine_n who_o declare_v this_o to_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o heretic_n joh._n heretic_n aug._n tract_n 97._o in_o joh._n all_o of_o the_o most_o foolish_a heretic_n use_v to_o colour_v their_o bold_a fiction_n with_o this_o say_n i_o have_v yet_o many_o thing_n to_o say_v unto_o you_o and_o this_o very_a text_n the_o jesuite_n 119._o jesuite_n pag._n 119._o likewise_o use_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n to_o colour_v this_o bold_a fiction_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n therewith_o thus_o the_o heretic_n yea_o omnes_fw-la insipientissimi_fw-la haereâiâi_fw-la if_o you_o will_v believe_v s._n augustine_n agree_v in_o urge_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o yet_o the_o jesuite_n say_v they_o agree_v in_o reject_v unwritten_a tradition_n to_o the_o three_o that_o the_o father_n pursue_v those_o heretic_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n i_o answer_v if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o dispute_v against_o a_o heathen_a it_o be_v in_o vaâe_n to_o press_v he_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o deny_v many_o of_o the_o father_n dispute_v against_o heretic_n that_o do_v sapere_fw-la cum_fw-la ethnicis_fw-la as_o tertullian_n cain_n tertullian_n tertul._n the_o resurrect_a cain_n affirm_v and_o will_v not_o be_v tryeâ_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o reject_v they_o as_o counterfeit_v as_o imperfect_a and_o liable_a to_o various_a interpretation_n as_o ireââus_n hâth_v record_v their_o action_n to_o depute_v against_o sâch_n by_o the_o scripture_n will_v be_v but_o labour_n lose_v cyrill_n teachâth_v we_o how_o to_o deal_v with_o such_o 18._o such_o contra_fw-la coâ_n qui_fw-la âeriâta_fw-la non_fw-la admittunâ_n pugâato_fw-mi aââ_n be_v non_fw-la scriptis_fw-la ex_fw-la solis_fw-la ratiocinationibus_fw-la &_o demonstrationibus_fw-la cyril_n hâerosol_n catechâs_n 18._o fight_v against_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o scripture_n by_o unwritten_a weapon_n only_o by_o strong_a reason_n and_o demonstration_n thus_o cyrill_n in_o the_o same_o place_n proove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n by_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o moon_n as_o s._n paul_n prove_v it_o by_o 15._o by_o 1._o cor._n 15._o the_o spring_a of_o the_o corne._n the_o same_o apostle_n make_v use_v of_o heathen_a poet_n as_o of_o epimânides_n 1._o epimânides_n tit._n 1._o aratiâ_n and_o 17._o and_o act._n 17._o menander_n and_o so_o the_o father_n make_v use_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n by_o unwritten_a argument_n they_o prove_v write_v doctrine_n against_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o write_a word_n and_o when_o the_o heretic_n appeal_v from_o scripture_n to_o unwritten_a tradition_n they_o pursue_v they_o by_o the_o true_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v &_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o 15._o *_o 1._o cor._n 15._o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v nothing_o for_o unwritten_a doctrine_n it_o only_o concern_v modum_fw-la probandi_fw-la not_o rem_fw-la probatâm_fw-la the_o thing_n prove_v may_v be_v write_v although_o the_o medium_n or_o argumentum_fw-la whereby_o it_o be_v prove_v be_v not_o write_v what_o enemy_n those_o famous_a heretic_n nestorius_n eutyâhes_n ââ7â_n reply_v p._n ââ7â_n &_o dioschorus_fw-la be_v unto_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v discover_v by_o basil_n bishop_n of_o ancâra_n s._n bernard_n tell_v we_o the_o same_o âle_v of_o certuine_a heretic_n of_o his_o time_n call_v apostolic_o who_o be_v follow_v herein_o by_o wicklessâ_n as_o thomas_n waldensis_n do_v recount_v &_o by_o the_o hussite_n as_o cocklaus_n bear_v witness_v &_o from_o these_o bellarmine_n say_v true_o thâ_n protestant's_n do_v receive_v their_o opinion_n and_o this_o be_v your_o pedigree_n x._o we_o receive_v not_o our_o opinion_n from_o man_n but_o find_v our_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n &_o from_o time_n to_o time_n confirm_v by_o the_o preach_n &_o write_n of_o the_o father_n as_o for_o basil_n bishop_n of_o ancira_n he_o be_v a_o idolater_n and_o one_o of_o that_o second_o conventicle_n at_o nice_a wherein_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n idolatry_n be_v establish_v so_o that_o his_o testimony_n be_v little_a worth_n those_o famous_a heretic_n nostorius_fw-la entyches_n &_o dioschorus_fw-la be_v not_o condemn_v for_o deny_v unwritten_a tradition_n but_o for_o oppose_v write_v doctrine_n although_o bernard_n live_v in_o a_o decline_a age_n yet_o he_o defend_v no_o unwritten_a tradition_n against_o the_o apostolic_o but_o be_v urge_v by_o they_o to_o show_v where_o in_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v write_v he_o accept_v of_o their_o appeal_v to_o the_o gospel_n prosecute_v they_o in_o their_o appeal_n and_o examine_v the_o cause_n by_o the_o scripture_n caââic_n scripture_n beââard_n âerm_n 65._o in_o caââic_n evangelium_fw-la appellast_n ad_fw-la evangelium_fw-la ibis_fw-la have_v thââ_n appeal_v unto_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gospel_n thou_o shall_v go_v wickliff_n defend_v no_o heretical_a doctrine_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o thomas_n waldensis_n relate_v it_o 19_o it_o quod_fw-la nulli_fw-la quidquam_fw-la in_o materie_n fidei_fw-la debent_fw-la definite_a nisi_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la habent_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la scripturae_fw-la tho._n wald._n l._n 2._o doct._n âid_o antiq_fw-la c._n 19_o that_o none_o ought_v to_o determine_v any_o thing_n in_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n if_o this_o make_v wickliff_n a_o heretic_n what_o then_o will_v you_o say_v of_o thomas_n waldensis_n himself_o who_o say_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n ibid._n church_n idem_fw-la ibid._n in_o the_o doubt_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v inquire_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o if_o any_o shall_v ask_v who_o shall_v declare_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v he_o answer_v not_o the_o african_a church_n as_o donatus_n say_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o jesuite_n will_v say_v but_o the_o universal_a church_n not_o as_o gather_v in_o a_o general_a synod_n which_o âft_o have_v err_v but_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n disperse_v over_o the_o world_n where_o then_o be_v the_o pope_n cathedral_n voice_n this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o then_o hatch_v that_o whatsoever_o power_n be_v extensiuè_fw-la in_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o same_o be_v intensiuè_fw-la in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v a_o thing_n take_v pro_fw-la concesso_fw-la that_o iâ_n determine_v doubt_n of_o faith_n the_o pope_n can_v err_v huss_n oppose_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o hear_v his_o enemy_n speak_v evil_a of_o he_o and_o of_o his_o adherent_n final_o the_o jesuite_n conclude_v with_o a_o rot_a lie_n that_o our_o pedigree_n be_v from_o those_o rot_a heretic_n it_o be_v a_o brute_n raise_v by_o a_o brute_n as_o true_a as_o the_o tale_n of_o the_o britane_n from_o brute_n s._n chrysostome_n in_o like_a manner_n give_v this_o for_o a_o mark_n of_o answer_n answer_n antichrist_n and_o of_o all_o spiritual_a thief_n that_o they_o come_v not_o in_o by_o the_o door_n of_o the_o scripture_n 10_o scripture_n chrys_n ãâã_d in_o joh._n 10_o for_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o like_v unto_o a_o sure_a door_n do_v bar_v a_o entrance_n unto_o heretic_n safeguard_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v and_o not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v deceive_v whereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o who_o so_o use_v not_o the_o scripture_n but_o come_v in_o otherwise_o that_o be_v betake_v himself_o to_o a_o other_o and_o a_o unlawful_a way_n he_o be_v a_o thâefe_n to_o this_o the_o jesuit_n retnrn_v no_o answer_n he_o dare_v not_o touch_v it_o it_o discover_v he_o to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a thief_n and_o a_o minister_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o thing_n unwritten_a be_v a_o other_o way_n and_o therefore_o a_o unlawful_a way_n how_o this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n wrought_v when_o antichrist_n answer_n answer_n come_v unto_o his_o full_a growth_n be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la thought_n by_o some_o to_o be_v waltram_n bishop_n of_o naâmburg_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o monk_n that_o for_o the_o uphold_v of_o pope_n hildebrands_n faction_n bring_v in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n into_o the_o church_n note_v this_o special_o of_o they_o eccles_n they_o lib_n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la eccles_n that_o despise_v the_o tradition_n of_o god_n they_o desire_v other_o doctrine_n and_o bring_v in_o mastery_n of_o humane_a institution_n waltram_n his_o invective_n against_o pope_n hildebrand_n be_v to_o no_o 157_o reply_v pag._n 157_o purpose_n
father_n speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v 168._o reply_v p._n 168._o compare_v with_o the_o writing_n of_o man_n which_o be_v but_o of_o humane_a authority_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o have_v the_o prerogative_n of_o undoubted_a truth_n our_o adversary_n give_v forth_o that_o the_o father_n hereby_o do_v reduce_v the_o certainty_n of_o all_o truth_n unto_o the_o sole_a scripture_n absolute_o 9_o as_o comparison_n be_v odious_a especial_o with_o the_o scripture_n so_o this_o observation_n be_v ridiculous_a we_o have_v oft_o show_v that_o the_o father_n do_v give_v unto_o the_o scripture_n not_o only_o a_o comparative_a certainty_n &_o infallibility_n above_o the_o writing_n of_o any_o doctor_n whatsoever_o but_o likewise_o do_v attribute_n unto_o they_o the_o only_o assure_a certainty_n and_o the_o absolute_a infallibility_n when_o s._n peter_n say_v 1â_n say_v 2._o pet._n 1._o 1â_n we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n with_o what_o do_v he_o compare_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o with_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n no_o but_o even_o with_o this_o voice_n or_o unwritten_a word_n when_o it_o be_v first_o speak_v this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n then_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a whether_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n or_o no_o it_o may_v have_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o angel_n but_o at_o that_o time_n the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n concern_v christ_n be_v more_o sure_a because_o there_o be_v more_o certainty_n &_o assurance_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o that_o this_o voice_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n s._n peter_n suppose_a successor_n hold_v many_o unwritten_a tradition_n such_o as_o god_n never_o speak_v &_o such_o as_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n never_o deliver_v unto_o he_o and_o all_o those_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v as_o sure_a and_o certain_a as_o god_n write_v word_n and_o suppose_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v deliver_v these_o tradition_n be_v they_o therefore_o as_o certain_a and_o infallible_a as_o the_o scripture_n the_o jesuite_n affirm_v it_o figure_v it_o pag_n 171._o if_o true_o figure_v these_o tradition_n be_v corroborate_v by_o the_o write_a attestation_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o holy_a doctor_n this_o be_v a_o warrant_n of_o itself_o infallible_a and_o undoubted_a the_o cardinal_n deny_v it_o even_o in_o this_o his_o observation_n for_o he_o grant_v we_o that_o though_o the_o certainty_n and_o infallibility_n of_o all_o truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reduce_v only_o and_o absolute_o unto_o the_o scripture_n yet_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o father_n do_v esteem_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v more_o certain_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o writing_n of_o humane_a authority_n here_o be_v manasseh_n against_o ephraim_n and_o ephraim_n against_o manasseh_n and_o both_o against_o the_o truth_n the_o write_a attestation_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v the_o best_a authority_n which_o the_o jesuite_n can_v produce_v for_o unwritten_a tradition_n thiâ_n write_v attestation_n be_v not_o so_o certain_a &_o infallible_a as_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o cardinal_n confess_v then_o the_o consequence_n be_v sure_a that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v not_o as_o certain_a &_o infallible_a as_o the_o scripture_n &_o consequent_o the_o certainty_n &_o infallibility_n of_o all_o doctrine_n must_v be_v reduce_v only_o &_o absolute_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o obedience_n due_a unto_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n give_v only_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n whensoever_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o god_n give_v necessary_a commandment_n only_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n which_o be_v not_o write_v and_o that_o the_o unwritten_a commandment_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o same_o we_o will_v give_v obedience_n to_o they_o 4._o when_o the_o father_n dispute_v with_o heretic_n do_v 168_o reply_v pag._n 168_o argue_v as_o they_o say_v adhominem_fw-la that_o be_v when_o they_o urge_v they_o out_o of_o their_o own_o erroneous_a principle_n and_o provoke_v they_o unto_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o write_a word_n our_o adversary_n step_v forth_o and_o will_v have_v this_o kind_n of_o argue_v to_o be_v universal_a withal_o whereas_o this_o be_v the_o conclusion_n to_o be_v draweâ_n from_o hence_o therefore_o the_o father_n admit_v no_o mean_a to_o be_v with_o the_o heretic_n for_o trial_n of_o true_a doctrine_n but_o only_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o heretic_n for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o disputation_n will_v disavow_v all_o authority_n of_o tradition_n and_o of_o church_n save_v only_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o father_n to_o keep_v their_o nose_n to_o the_o grindlestone_n do_v only_o press_v they_o with_o scripture_n 10._o this_o observation_n be_v a_o very_a heap_n of_o untruth_n 1._o that_o the_o heretic_n for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o disputation_n be_v accustom_v to_o reject_v tradition_n and_o to_o fly_v unto_o scripture_n only_o as_o the_o heretic_n be_v many_o and_o their_o opinion_n different_a so_o their_o practice_n be_v diverse_a the_o cardinal_n can_v prove_v that_o ten_o of_o the_o hundred_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o disputation_n do_v renounce_v tradition_n and_o only_o betake_v themselves_o to_o scripture_n it_o be_v rather_o their_o practice_n to_o allege_v tradition_n of_o their_o own_o and_o never_o to_o forsake_v that_o fastness_n until_o they_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o it_o they_o be_v as_o earnest_a pleader_n for_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o as_o great_a enemy_n against_o the_o scripture_n as_o our_o adversary_n be_v or_o can_v be_v and_o therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o first_o they_o be_v style_v 3._o style_v hieronym_n l._n 2._o in_o eâav_n c._n 3._o deutorotae_n tradition-monger_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o latter_a they_o be_v call_v carâ_n call_v tertullian_n de_fw-fr resurrect_v carâ_n lucifugae_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la owl_n fly_v from_o scripture_n 2._o that_o it_o be_v a_o erroneous_a principle_n in_o the_o heretic_n to_o fly_v only_o unto_o scripture_n i_o read_v of_o the_o father_n condemn_v of_o heretic_n for_o fly_v from_o scripture_n for_o not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n for_o misinterpret_v of_o they_o but_o i_o never_o read_v where_o they_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o father_n for_o fly_v to_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o jewish_a cabalist_n will_v reproach_v those_o that_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o scripture_n with_o this_o nickname_n of_o karaim_n as_o roman_a traditiân-mângers_a call_v we_o scripturiaâs_o but_o the_o father_n never_o account_v it_o a_o error_n s._n augustine_n have_v clear_v this_o to_o be_v no_o error_n in_o commend_v 26._o commend_v aug_n l_o 5_o cont_n donat._n c_o 26._o cyprian_n appeal_v unto_o the_o scripture_n &_o 1â2_n &_o aug._n epist_n 1â2_n this_o make_v man_n heretic_n say_v he_o nor_o because_o they_o do_v not_o contemn_v but_o because_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n these_o two_o untruth_n we_o have_v 7_o have_v sect_n 7._o diu._n 7_o already_o full_o confute_v 3._o that_o the_o father_n admit_v no_o other_o mean_a for_o trial_n of_o true_a doctrine_n with_o the_o heretic_n but_o only_a scripture_n i_o will_v not_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o conclusion_n because_o it_o serve_v to_o our_o purpose_n 1._o to_o show_v that_o this_o be_v no_o erroneous_a principle_n to_o fly_v only_o ânto_o scripture_n 2._o it_o overthrow_v what_o the_o jesuite_n affirm_v 156._o affirm_v pag._n 153._o &_o 156._o that_o the_o father_n still_o produce_v unwritten_a tradition_n against_o the_o heretic_n and_o that_o they_o make_v tradition_n and_o not_o scripture_n the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o to_o try_v true_a doctrine_n with_o heretic_n 3._o it_o manifest_o declare_v what_o the_o father_n thought_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n see_v they_o dare_v try_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o heretic_n even_o at_o their_o own_o weapon_n and_o by_o their_o own_o principle_n suppose_v scripture_n to_o be_v their_o weapon_n and_o their_o principle_n as_o therefore_o the_o father_n deal_v with_o the_o heretic_n press_v they_o only_o with_o scripture_n so_o may_v we_o deal_v with_o you_o but_o we_o have_v be_v content_a to_o be_v try_v both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v by_o the_o mouth_n not_o only_o of_o twelve_o but_o also_o of_o cccxviii_o father_n give_v their_o verdict_n against_o you_o 5._o when_o the_o father_n do_v dispute_v of_o a_o custom_n or_o question_n 169_o reply_v pag._n 169_o not_o yet_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o tradition_n can_v be_v allege_v for_o the_o same_o then_o the_o father_n provoke_v their_o adversary_n unto_o scripture_n only_o and_o
scripture_n and_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o general_a sense_n of_o traditio_fw-la with_o the_o latin_n of_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d with_o the_o greek_a of_o cabbala_n or_o masore_v with_o the_o hebrew_n be_v the_o same_o namely_o a_o delivery_n or_o any_o thing_n deliver_v aswell_o by_o 15._o by_o â_o thââ_n â_o 15._o epistle_n as_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n the_o word_n tradition_n be_v take_v aswell_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n which_o be_v traditio_fw-la activa_fw-la as_o for_o the_o matter_n deliver_v which_o be_v traditio_fw-la passiva_fw-la and_o therefore_o lest_o the_o jesuite_n who_o be_v well_o skill_a in_o the_o practice_n of_o equivocation_n shall_v equivocate_v with_o the_o word_n tradition_n and_o so_o prove_v quid_fw-la pro_fw-la quo_fw-la the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n for_o the_o matter_n deliver_v the_o answer_n show_v he_o that_o we_o admit_v modum_fw-la tradendi_fw-la the_o answer_n answer_n manner_n of_o delivery_n we_o willing_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o by_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n be_v both_o by_o themselves_o and_o other_o of_o their_o fellowlabourer_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o that_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o preserve_v those_o sacred_a writing_n commit_v to_o her_o trust_n but_o also_o to_o deliver_v unto_o her_o child_n viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-la the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n contain_v therein_o here_o he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o we_o admit_v modum_fw-la tradândi_fw-la the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n both_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o the_o church_n 1._o we_o believe_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n aswell_o as_o their_o writing_n so_o that_o it_o be_v quint._n be_v ridiculum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la nemini_fw-la est_fw-la dubium_fw-la probare_fw-la mare_fw-la tul_n pro_fw-la quint._n a_o ridiculous_a thing_n in_o the_o jesuite_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o no_o man_n doubt_v he_o allege_v the_o father_n as_o 118_o as_o iren._n pag._n 118_o irenaeus_n 120._o irenaeus_n euscb_n pag._n 120._o eusebius_n &_o many_o more_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o apostles_n preach_v before_o they_o write_v &_o that_o their_o preach_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v &_o be_v effectual_a to_o save_v soulâs_n aswell_o as_o their_o writing_n in_o this_o he_o shrink_v from_o the_o question_n which_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o apostle_n preach_v before_o they_o write_v &_o whether_o their_o preach_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o thââ_n he_o shall_v frame_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o preach_v deliver_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n as_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n 2._o as_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v a_o tradition_n so_o be_v their_o delivery_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o of_o divers_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o they_o call_v a_o tradition_n be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o writing_n â6_n writing_n traditum_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o una_fw-la spes_fw-la &_o una_fw-la side_n etc._n etc._n august_n de_fw-fr baptism_n l._n 5._o c._n â6_n it_o be_v dell_n vere_v unto_o we_o say_v s._n august_n in_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o hope_n one_o faith_n etc._n etc._n as_o this_o kind_n of_o tradition_n come_v not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o this_o controversy_n so_o these_o father_n 125._o father_n irenaeus_n pag._n 125._o irânaus_n 120_o irânaus_n euseb_n pag._n 109._o 120_o eusebius_n and_o sundry_a other_o be_v impertinent_o produce_v by_o the_o jesuite_n who_o ascribe_v the_o word_n tradition_n unto_o scripture_n and_o unto_o write_v doctrine_n in_o this_o the_o jesuite_n shrink_v again_o from_o the_o question_n which_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v call_v a_o traââtion_n but_o whether_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n be_v write_v in_o this_o tradition_n unto_o these_o two_o i_o may_v add_v a_o three_o kind_n of_o active_a tradition_n &_o that_o be_v the_o delivery_n by_o action_n or_o conversation_n which_o i_o may_v call_v a_o practical_a tradition_n s._n chrysostome_n expound_v these_o word_n 6._o word_n 2._o thess_n 3._o 6._o withdraw_v yourselves_o from_o every_o brother_n that_o walk_v disorderly_a and_o not_o after_o the_o tradition_n which_o he_o receive_v of_o no._n give_v this_o sense_n of_o they_o 3._o they_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d chrysost_n in_o 2._o thes_n c._n 3._o he_o mean_v the_o tradition_n which_o be_v according_a unto_o work_n this_o kind_n of_o tradition_n belong_v not_o to_o our_o purpose_n and_o to_o little_a purpose_n do_v the_o jesuite_n bring_v in_o 162._o in_o juseb_n pag._n 162._o eusebius_n who_o call_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n a_o tradition_n in_o this_o again_o the_o jesuite_n shrink_v from_o the_o question_n which_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v call_v a_o tradition_n but_o whether_o in_o their_o practice_n of_o piety_n they_o observe_v any_o holy_a duty_n necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o express_o or_o by_o consequence_n we_o likewise_o admit_v the_o active_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o 1._o her_o preserve_n and_o delivery_n of_o the_o write_a word_n unto_o her_o child_n in_o succeed_a age_n not_o as_o the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v canonical_a yet_o as_o one_o good_a mean_n though_o not_o as_o the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v canonical_a and_o the_o grant_v of_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o a_o deal_n of_o confuse_a stuff_n allege_v by_o the_o jesuite_n in_o his_o 4._o section_n 2._o her_o delivery_n viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-la of_o the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n and_o of_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v either_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o by_o sound_a inference_n may_v be_v deduce_v from_o they_o s._n fide_fw-la s._n basil_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la basil_n be_v spare_v to_o use_v such_o word_n as_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o the_o pontifical_a romanist_n spare_v not_o to_o bring_v in_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o it_o for_o word_n we_o say_v with_o hilary_n word_n arian_n word_n nomen_fw-la nihââ_n habeteriminiâ_n quod_fw-la non_fw-la perturbat_fw-la sensum_fw-la religionis_fw-la hilar_n de_fw-fr synod_n count_v arian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v which_o disturb_v not_o the_o sense_n of_o religion_n all_o thing_n be_v not_o deliver_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d verbatim_o in_o the_o scripture_n i_o read_v not_o the_o word_n essence_n person_n unbegotten_a coessential_a yet_o we_o do_v lawful_o use_v they_o all_o doctrine_n be_v not_o formal_o lay_v down_o in_o they_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v not_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la write_v in_o they_o yet_o they_o contain_v ground_n &_o principle_n by_o which_o all_o doctrine_n may_v be_v try_v and_o from_o which_o all_o divine_a conclusion_n may_v be_v draw_v and_o those_o conclusion_n which_o by_o sound_a inference_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o opinion_n of_o theolog_fw-la of_o greg_n nazian_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la theolog_fw-la gregory_n nazian_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o this_o 1_o this_o stapleton_n relect_v fidei_fw-la controv_fw-mi 5._o q._n 5._o be_v 1_o stapleton_n consent_v by_o this_o kind_n of_o tradition_n we_o be_v teach_v many_o point_n of_o say_v as_o these_o father_n prove_v which_o the_o jesuite_n allege_v abundant_o and_o impertinent_o by_o 140._o by_o athanas_n pag._n 140._o athanasius_n and_o 145._o and_o epiph_n pag._n 145._o epiphanius_n that_o the_o father_n be_v unbegotten_a by_o 140._o by_o athanas_n pag._n 140._o athanasius_n and_o 155._o and_o august_n pag._n 155._o augustine_n that_o the_o son_n be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n by_o 150._o by_o basil_n pag._n 150._o basil_n and_o 119_o and_o aug._n pag._n 119_o augustine_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o 126._o by_o origen_n pag._n 126._o origen_n and_o 126_o and_o august_n pag._n 118._o 119._o &_o 126_o augustine_n that_o child_n must_v be_v baptize_v by_o augustine_n that_o the_o baptise_a by_o heretic_n must_v not_o be_v rebaptise_v he_o alone_o be_v allege_v for_o this_o point_n but_o yet_o for_o want_v of_o company_n he_o be_v so_o 11â_n so_o augustin_n pag._n 116._o 116._o 146._o 148._o ideââ_n pag._n 118._o &_o 147_o idem_fw-la pag._n 119._o &_o 148._o pag._n 11â_n oft_o bring_v in_o still_o sing_v the_o same_o song_n that_o the_o music_n must_v needs_o be_v tedious_a to_o the_o hearer_n and_o the_o quotation_n troublesome_a to_o the_o reader_n the_o jesuite_n again_o shrink_v from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n in_o allege_v these_o father_n as_o patron_n of_o a_o tradition_n which_o we_o defend_v the_o question_n
be_v not_o this_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la be_v not_o this_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n he_o may_v soon_o cough_v up_o his_o heart_n then_o prove_v the_o contrary_n and_o though_o some_o thing_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n without_o writing_n yet_o their_o authority_n may_v be_v less_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o commit_v to_o writing_n not_o because_o write_n give_v authority_n but_o because_o the_o authority_n may_v arise_v from_o the_o matter_n deliver_v and_o from_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o deliverer_n 1._o from_o the_o matter_n deliver_v unwritten_a ritual_a tradition_n may_v be_v of_o the_o same_o authority_n with_o write_a ritual_a tradition_n which_o be_v mutable_a and_o changeable_a but_o no_o man_n of_o understanding_n will_v say_v that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o authority_n with_o write_a doctrinal_a tradition_n which_o be_v immutable_a and_o unchangeable_a 2._o from_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o deliverer_n those_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n intend_v shall_v be_v universal_a and_o perpetual_a be_v write_v by_o they_o but_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o intend_v shall_v be_v transient_a and_o particular_a for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n so_o that_o their_o intention_n be_v to_o deliver_v such_o thing_n as_o befit_v those_o timâs_n and_o place_n and_o not_o by_o they_o to_o make_v a_o addition_n to_o the_o write_a word_n as_o it_o be_v defective_a nor_o to_o make_v they_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o write_a word_n in_o league_n between_o prince_n &_o prince_n &_o in_o covenant_n between_o man_n and_o man_n the_o article_n be_v commit_v unto_o writing_n god_n have_v enter_v into_o a_o covenant_n with_o man_n and_o have_v make_v choice_n to_o deliver_v it_o by_o writing_n and_o therefore_o we_o give_v supreme_a authority_n to_o the_o write_a word_n above_o all_o thing_n unwritten_a whatsoever_o yet_o those_o thing_n which_o by_o sound_a inference_n be_v deduce_v from_o the_o scripture_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n but_o first_o you_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v which_o be_v a_o sound_a inference_n 116_o reply_v pag._n 116_o 6._o sir_n i_o tell_v you_o that_o you_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o a_o sound_a inference_n it_o be_v of_o old_a account_v a_o argument_n sound_a both_o in_o matter_n and_o form_n 2_o form_n thom._n walâing_n histor_n richââ_n 2_o if_o a_o friar_n than_o a_o liar_n this_o argument_n be_v as_o sound_v if_o a_o jesuite_n then_o a_o liar_n the_o inference_n be_v sound_a because_o 11._o because_o psal_n 116._o 11._o all_o man_n be_v liar_n this_o be_v a_o sure_a inference_n than_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n or_o the_o corporal_a presence_n the_o first_o depend_v upon_o many_o false_a supposition_n and_o the_o second_o upon_o many_o doubtful_a intention_n such_o i_o confess_v be_v the_o depth_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o sound_v it_o and_o to_o find_v out_o all_o the_o sound_a inference_n that_o may_v be_v deduce_v from_o it_o such_o be_v the_o depth_n of_o scripture_n say_v s._n augustine_n 3â_n augustine_n tanta_fw-la est_fw-la christianarum_fw-la literarum_fw-la profunditas_fw-la ut_fw-la iâ_n eye_v quotid_v se_fw-la proficerem_fw-la sieas_fw-la solas_fw-la ab_fw-la in_fw-la cunte_o aetaâe_v usque_fw-la ad_fw-la decrepitam_fw-la senectuâem_fw-la coâareâ_n addiscere_fw-la august_n ep._n 3â_n that_o still_o i_o may_v learn_v more_o out_o of_o it_o although_o i_o shall_v study_v nothing_o but_o it_o all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n but_o to_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v which_o be_v a_o sound_a inference_n out_o of_o it_o be_v to_o deny_v that_o we_o have_v wit_n or_o any_o spiritual_a understanding_n this_o be_v a_o most_o witless_a cavil_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o jesuite_n have_v no_o more_o brain_n than_o a_o bird-boult_a 2._o we_o have_v the_o express_a warrant_n of_o the_o scripture_n approve_v reply_n reply_n unwritten_a tradition_n and_o so_o the_o scripture_n condemn_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o i_o believe_v when_o we_o come_v to_o examine_v your_o tradition_n we_o shall_v find_v they_o more_o like_o those_o which_o be_v condemn_v than_o those_o which_o be_v commend_v by_o the_o scripture_n 3._o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v all_o such_o tradition_n as_o the_o catholic_n reply_n reply_n church_n hold_v for_o apostolical_a to_o be_v doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o be_v we_o but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o popish_a tradition_n which_o be_v never_o hold_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o apostolical_a and_o be_v no_o doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n from_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v long_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o catalogue_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n we_o press_v you_o and_o defy_v you_o to_o set_v it_o out_o this_o puny_a jesuite_n know_v not_o what_o be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n what_o a_o babble_a wittol_n be_v this_o he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v all_o unwritten_a tradition_n to_o be_v doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n from_o the_o scripture_n if_o he_o do_v not_o prove_v this_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n in_o grain_n if_o he_o do_v prove_v this_o than_o he_o over-throweth_a unwritten_a tradition_n for_o doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n from_o scripture_n be_v not_o unwritten_a tradition_n but_o even_o all_o one_o with_o the_o scripture_n itself_o i_o marvel_v not_o at_o the_o dunsary_a of_o this_o ignoramus_n in_o call_v doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n from_o scripture_n unwritten_a tradition_n see_v in_o 145._o in_o pag._n 145._o a_o other_o place_n he_o call_v the_o scripture_n itself_o a_o unwritten_a tradition_n sr._n ignaro_n learn_v to_o speak_v english_a before_o you_o write_v again_o in_o divinity_n but_o let_v we_o here_o his_o sound_a inference_n because_o the_o scripture_n command_v we_o to_o obey_v the_o church_n a_o sound_a inference_n to_o defend_v jewish_a tradition_n aswell_o as_o popish_a because_o the_o church_n among_o they_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v such_o a_o inference_n may_v pass_v for_o current_n among_o your_o proselyte_n who_o must_v believe_v whatsoever_o you_o prate_v or_o prattle_v this_o be_v a_o sound_n of_o a_o inference_n but_o no_o sound_a inference_n 1._o because_o the_o romish_a priest_n and_o prelate_n who_o require_v this_o audience_n and_o obedience_n be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n but_o upstart_a impostor_n tradition-monger_n such_o the_o scripture_n command_v we_o not_o to_o obey_v 2._o though_o they_o be_v a_o true_a church_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o which_o mr_n dullman_n speak_v 3._o because_o the_o tradition_n which_o you_o defend_v across_o both_o the_o verity_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v no_o doctrine_n deduce_v by_o sound_a inference_n from_o the_o scripture_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o set_v ourselves_o against_o they_o then_o you_o set_v yourself_o against_o no_o body_n reply_n reply_n but_o combat_n with_o your_o own_o shadow_n frame_a a_o fantastical_a adversary_n for_o such_o tradition_n as_o we_o defend_v be_v far_o from_o cross_v the_o verity_n or_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n 7._o the_o first_o article_n of_o ignatius_n loiola_n his_o lame_a confession_n be_v this_o jesuit_n this_o credo_fw-la scripturam_fw-la esse_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la imperfectam_fw-la mutilam_fw-la et_fw-la mancam_fw-la hospin_n the_o orig_n jesuit_n i_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o imperfect_a lame_a and_o maim_a doctrine_n not_o all_o that_o a_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v but_o only_o â_o only_o maxima_fw-la pars_fw-la coâtinetur_fw-la in_o scripture_n andrad_n orthodox_n explicat_fw-la a_o â_o the_o great_a part_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n say_v andradius_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la andradius_fw-la multo_fw-la pars_fw-la maxima_fw-la euangelij_fw-la pervenit_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la traditioner_n perexigua_fw-la est_fw-la literis_fw-la mandata_fw-la hosius_n confess_v petrocouââ_n 9_o de_fw-fr traditionibus_fw-la the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o have_v by_o tradition_n very_o little_o be_v commit_v unto_o writing_n thus_o write_v hosius_n the_o cardinal_n how_o oft_o have_v this_o sir_n oblivious_a deny_v the_o perfectiâ_n of_o scripture_n even_o in_o point_n of_o great_a moment_n 126._o moment_n pag._n 126._o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o father_n be_v unbegotten_a and_o that_o the_o son_n be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n &_o that_o 118._o that_o pag._n 118._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v he_o likewise_o affirm_v 132._o affirm_v pag._n 132._o that_o all_o the_o council_n of_o god_n which_o the_o minister_n be_v to_o deliver_v be_v not_o write_v and_o 165._o and_o pag._n 165._o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v sufficiency_n to_o declare_v some_o but_o not_o all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o this_o defect_n must_v
coâsen_n evan_fw-mi l._n 1._o c._n ult_n they_o be_v command_v to_o write_v say_v s._n augustine_n 1._o augustine_n iren._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o they_o write_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n say_v irenaus_n mat._n irenaus_n christus_fw-la voluit_fw-la scribi_fw-la euangelium_fw-la tâeoph_n praefat_fw-la in_o mat._n christ_n will_v have_v they_o to_o write_v the_o gospel_n say_v theophyla_v and_o be_v not_o his_o will_n a_o sufficient_a command_n inspiration_n 21._o inspiration_n 2._o tim._n 3._o 16._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 21._o whereby_o they_o write_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o internal_a command_n he_o send_v they_o to_o preach_v his_o faith_n and_o to_o teach_v all_o nation_n do_v this_o exclude_v write_v may_v not_o a_o man_n preach_v &_o teach_v by_o writing_n the_o apostle_n do_v 26._o do_v rom_n 16_o 26._o preach_v &_o they_o do_v 17_o do_v 2._o thess_n 2._o 15._o 2._o tim._n 3._o 17_o teach_v by_o their_o epistle_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n 117_o reply_v pag._n 117_o in_o this_o speak_v true_o 1._o true_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d clem._n alex._n strom._n l._n 1._o preach_v be_v true_o a_o angelical_a scieâcâ_n in_o some_o sort_n and_o very_o profitable_a both_o way_n whether_o it_o ââ_o by_o the_o hand_n or_o by_o the_o tongue_n tertullian_n tell_v we_o how_o the_o apostle_n preach_v 21_o preach_v tum_o viuâ_fw-la quod_fw-la aiunt_fw-la voce_fw-mi tum_fw-la per_fw-la epistolas_fw-la postea_fw-la tertul_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 21_o aswell_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o they_o say_v as_o afterward_o by_o epistle_n so_o that_o preach_v and_o teach_v may_v be_v diverse_a way_n by_o writing_n as_o the_o apostle_n preach_v by_o their_o epistle_n by_o practice_n as_o christ_n preach_v in_o his_o action_n which_o be_v all_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o not_o only_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n we_o have_v a_o commandment_n to_o hear_v his_o holy_a word_n and_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v but_o none_o can_v show_v i_o trow_v where_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o read_v or_o where_o any_o commandment_n be_v give_v to_o propound_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v read_v 3._o it_o seem_v the_o jesuite_n be_v more_o skilful_a in_o machiavelli_n then_o in_o the_o bible_n for_o if_o he_o have_v ever_o read_v it_o over_o and_o remember_v 119_o reply_v pag._n 119_o what_o he_o read_v he_o will_v never_o avouch_v this_o so_o confident_o when_o as_o he_o may_v read_v 2._o read_v hab._n 2._o 2._o he_o that_o run_v may_v read_v it_o 39_o it_o joh_n 5._o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n 26._o scripture_n luc._n 10._o 26._o how_o read_v thou_o 4._o thou_o rom._n 15._o 4._o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v aforetime_o be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n 13_o learning_n 2._o cor._n â_o 13_o we_o write_v no_o other_o thing_n unto_o you_o than_o what_o you_o read_v 16_o read_v col._n 3._o 16_o lât_v the_o word_n of_o god_n devil_n plentiful_o in_o you_o upon_o which_o place_n s._n chrysostome_n observe_v this_o 9_o this_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d chry_n in_o col._n c._n 3_o ho._n 9_o harken_v as_o many_o as_o be_v and_o be_v marry_v &_o have_v child_n hâw_o he_o command_v they_o special_o to_o know_v the_o scripture_n timothy_n himself_o be_v command_v to_o read_v and_o to_o 13._o to_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 13._o attend_v upon_o read_v neither_o do_v hear_v of_o the_o word_n exclude_v read_v of_o the_o same_o see_v it_o may_v be_v hear_v by_o read_v aswell_o as_o by_o preach_v 3._o preach_v revel_v 1_o 3._o bless_a be_v they_o that_o read_v and_o they_o that_o hear_v 29._o hear_v luc._n 16._o 29._o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n must_v be_v hear_v they_o be_v dead_a but_o yet_o when_o their_o writing_n be_v read_v than_o they_o be_v hear_v certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v abound_v in_o 118_o reply_v pag._n 118_o faith_n and_o godliness_n for_o many_o year_n before_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v perfect_v even_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o unwritten_a doctrine_n 4._o this_o be_v as_o certain_a as_o all_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v not_o many_o year_n before_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v perfect_v before_o it_o be_v perfect_v the_o church_n have_v those_o book_n of_o it_o which_o be_v first_o pen_v before_o any_o be_v pen_v the_o church_n have_v the_o old_a testament_n which_o christ_n command_v shall_v be_v 39_o be_v joh._n 5._o 39_o search_v and_o the_o berean_n be_v commend_v for_o 11._o for_o act._n 17._o 11._o search_v into_o it_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v not_o continue_v in_o faith_n and_o godliness_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o unwritten_a doctrine_n for_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o write_v in_o the_o 26._o the_o rom._n 16._o 26._o old_a testament_n and_o after_o in_o the_o new_a although_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v unwritten_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n of_o it_o by_o the_o apostle_n at_o the_o first_o viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-la howsoever_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v yet_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o write_a word_n child_n at_o first_o be_v teach_v many_o thing_n without_o book_n yet_o afterward_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o book_n for_o their_o better_a learning_n the_o primitive_a church_n may_v do_v well_o enough_o without_o scripture_n during_o the_o life_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o preach_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o their_o writing_n yet_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n can_v not_o do_v so_o well_o without_o scripture_n because_o no_o man_n live_v since_o the_o apostle_n have_v have_v or_o ever_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o gift_n power_n &_o authority_n to_o deliver_v point_n of_o faith_n who_o word_n shall_v be_v gospel_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v and_o because_o writing_n be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o preserve_v doctrine_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n 4._o mouth_n respect_n nostri_fw-la commodius_fw-la &_o utilius_fw-la per_fw-la scripturam_fw-la corleââem_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la à _fw-la corruption_n oblivione_n &_o interitu_fw-la conservari_fw-la quam_fw-la absque_fw-la scriptuââ_n gretzer_n de_fw-fr sens_fw-fr bellarâ_n l._n 4._o â_o 4._o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n say_v gretzer_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o be_v better_a preserve_v from_o corruption_n oblivion_n and_o decay_n by_o write_v then_o without_o writing_n s._n chrysostome_n teach_v we_o this_o 1._o that_o the_o singular_a gift_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v may_v well_o serve_v for_o these_o time_n instead_o of_o scripture_n 2._o that_o the_o aftertime_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o scripture_n and_o then_o he_o conclude_v mat._n conclude_v extremae_fw-la esse_fw-la omninò_fw-la dementiae_fw-la post_fw-la quam_fw-la co_fw-la redacti_fw-la sumus_fw-la ut_fw-la scriptis_fw-la indigeamus_fw-la âe_n secundo_fw-la quidem_fw-la hoc_fw-la remedio_fw-la ad_fw-la salntem_fw-la nostram_fw-la uti_fw-la item_n magni_fw-la esse_fw-la criminis_fw-la per_fw-la illud_fw-la auxilium_fw-la nolle_fw-la proficere_fw-la sed_fw-la quasi_fw-la fruâââà _fw-la ac_fw-la vanè_fw-la posita_fw-la scripta_fw-la despicere_fw-la chrysost_n hom_n 1._o in_o mat._n it_o be_v the_o extremity_n of_o madness_n now_o that_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o scripture_n not_o to_o use_v this_o excellent_a help_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a fault_n that_o can_v be_v not_o to_o profit_v by_o that_o help_n but_o to_o despise_v it_o as_o write_v in_o vain_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n this_o fit_a of_o frenzy_n have_v intoxicate_v the_o jesuite_n brain_n he_o have_v account_v the_o scripture_n needless_a and_o write_v in_o vain_a possevine_n have_v write_v a_o whole_a chapter_n 16._o chapter_n possev_n bibliothec_n select_a l._n 2_o c._n 16._o de_fw-fr necessitate_v scripturarum_fw-la s._n jude_n think_v it_o needful_a 3_o needful_a jude_n vers_fw-la 3_o to_o write_v to_o the_o saint_n 3._o saint_n luke_n 1._o 3._o it_o seem_v good_a to_o s._n luke_n to_o write_v his_o gospel_n to_o prevent_v false_a rumour_n and_o s._n paul_n think_v it_o 1._o it_o philip._n 3._o 1._o the_o sure_a way_n for_o the_o philippian_n to_o write_v unto_o they_o if_o it_o be_v needful_a good_a and_o the_o sure_a way_n then_o it_o be_v now_o more_o needful_a to_o have_v the_o write_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o prevent_v your_o false_a tradition_n father_v upon_o they_o and_n â_o and_n iren._n l._n 2._o c._n â_o irenaeus_n do_v witness_v that_o in_o his_o day_n many_o nation_n live_v christianly_o without_o the_o use_n of_o the_o write_a word_n only_o by_o the_o guide_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n sir_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o if_o you_o go_v on_o to_o allege_v the_o father_n as_o you_o begin_v you_o will_v gain_v little_a credit_n by_o it_o in_o your_o first_o testimony_n you_o cite_v a_o counterfeit_n in_o your_o second_o you_o omit_v the_o place_n in_o your_o three_o reply_n reply_n which_o be_v this_o you_o mistake_v the_o 4._o the_o l._n 2._o c._n 3._o
for_o l._n 3._o c._n 4._o place_n i_o subscribe_v to_o what_o irenaeus_n say_v and_o i_o believe_v that_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n many_o nation_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n not_o by_o unwritten_a doctrine_n but_o by_o deliver_v write_v doctrine_n in_o a_o unwritten_a manner_n irenaeus_n show_v 1._o show_v iren._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o first_o that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o afterward_o they_o deliver_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o in_o writing_n the_o same_o thing_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o may_v have_v the_o write_a word_n although_o the_o person_n teach_v have_v it_o not_o deliver_v unto_o the_o people_n irenaeus_n show_v what_o those_o thing_n be_v which_o be_v 4._o be_v iren._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o write_v in_o their_o heart_n without_o ink_n or_o letter_n they_o do_v believe_v ibid._n believe_v in_o unum_fw-la deum_fw-la sabricatorem_fw-la coeli_fw-la &_o terrae_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o eye_n sunt_fw-la per_fw-la christâââ_n jesum_fw-la dei_fw-la filium_fw-la etc._n etc._n iren._n ibid._n in_o one_o god_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o by_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v the_o tradition_n which_o they_o believe_v and_o if_o any_o will_v have_v teach_v they_o otherwise_o they_o ibid._n they_o iren._n ibid._n will_v have_v stop_v their_o ear_n as_o irenaeus_n show_v and_o have_v flee_v from_o they_o as_o they_o will_v from_o you_o and_o from_o your_o unwritten_a tradition_n 4._o tradition_n iren._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o irenaus_n demand_v how_o shall_v we_o dâe_v if_o the_o apostle_n have_v write_v nothing_o at_o all_o must_v we_o not_o then_o follow_v the_o rule_n 118._o reply_v pag._n 118._o of_o tradition_n deliver_v unto_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o we_o reject_v not_o this_o kind_n of_o tradition_n which_o be_v the_o succession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n and_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v see_v the_o apostle_n have_v write_v be_v it_o not_o our_o duty_n to_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o tradition_n deliver_v in_o their_o writing_n and_o not_o only_o to_o take_v that_o course_n now_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v write_v which_o irenaeus_n prescribe_v if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o write_v what_o if_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v consume_v so_o that_o not_o one_o reply_n reply_n copy_n thereof_o shall_v be_v extant_a which_o be_v possible_a and_o what_o if_o a_o man_n have_v lose_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaâing_n of_o the_o scripture_n how_o shall_v he_o find_v it_o out_o must_v he_o not_o as_o irenaeus_n say_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o those_o unto_o who_o they_o commit_v the_o church_n the_o 1._o hypothesis_n be_v absurd_a and_o impossible_a the_o sun_n may_v aswell_o be_v pull_v out_o of_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o sky_n fall_v as_o the_o scripture_n perish_v â_o perish_v staplet_n coât_fw-la whiâak_v de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr script_n l._n â_o c._n 1._o s_o â_o if_o it_o shall_v god_n himself_o must_v fail_v in_o his_o providence_n say_v stapleton_n the_o 2._o hypothesis_n be_v possible_a a_o man_n may_v lâse_o tâe_v true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o order_n of_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v one_o but_o not_o the_o only_a mean_n to_o find_v it_o out_o and_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n find_v out_o this_o order_n of_o tradition_n in_o the_o original_n of_o it_o better_o than_o by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o so_o that_o when_o all_o be_v do_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o it_o self_n 63._o self_n legitima_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la periculo_fw-la est_fw-la expositio_fw-la scripturae_fw-la secundum_fw-la ipsas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la iren._n l._n 4._o c_o 63._o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v the_o most_o sure_a say_v irenaeus_n the_o apostle_n have_v write_v their_o writing_n be_v preserve_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o be_v well_o know_v yet_o we_o reject_v not_o this_o mean_n but_o do_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o long_o as_o we_o follow_v their_o writing_n for_o both_o by_o preach_v and_o by_o writing_n they_o teach_v the_o same_o popish_a tradition_n be_v not_o of_o this_o order_n they_o be_v never_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o by_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o of_o old_a by_o heretic_n and_o of_o late_a by_o a_o anti_n christian_n faction_n moreover_o s._n augustine_n teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v many_o 118_o reply_v pag._n 118_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o which_o we_o have_v no_o write_a word_n 128_o word_n aug._n epist_n 128_o in_o those_o thing_n of_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v nothing_o what_o course_n be_v we_o to_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v use_v by_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v say_v s._n augustine_n and_o it_o will_v be_v insolent_a madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o same_o 6._o the_o jesuite_n mistake_v both_o the_o 118._o the_o epist_n 128_o for_o 118._o place_n &_o the_o point_n s._n augustine_n speak_v not_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n at_o all_o but_o only_o of_o some_o ritual_a point_n or_o custom_n then_o in_o use_n as_o of_o the_o use_n of_o holy_a day_n of_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n fast_v and_o the_o like_a these_o come_v not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o this_o controversy_n and_o as_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o these_o thing_n so_o it_o be_v little_o better_a in_o he_o then_o madness_n to_o dispute_v about_o these_o thing_n and_o to_o call_v these_o thing_n point_n of_o faith_n for_o 24._o for_o aug._n the_o bap_n count_v donatist_n l._n 4._o c._n 24._o whatsoever_o the_o church_n universal_a do_v hold_v if_o it_o reply_n reply_n be_v not_o find_v or_o dain_v by_o some_o council_n but_o have_v be_v always_o in_o use_n it_o be_v most_o just_o believe_v to_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o none_o other_o but_o of_o the_o very_a apostle_n themselves_o s._n augustine_n treat_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n and_o call_v it_o traditum_fw-la apostolicâ_fw-la autheritate_fw-la a_o thing_n deliver_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n or_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o be_v not_o write_v doctrine_n deliver_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n s._n augustine_n do_v not_o account_v baptism_n of_o child_n to_o be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o argument_n take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o use_v we_o need_v not_o go_v far_o than_o this_o chapter_n to_o find_v one_o ibidem_fw-la one_o si_fw-mi quisquam_fw-la hac_fw-la in_o re_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la quaerat_fw-la divinam_fw-la &c_n &c_n veraciter_fw-la conjicere_fw-la possumus_fw-la quid_fw-la valeat_fw-la in_o parvulis_fw-la baptismi_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la ex_fw-la circumcisione_n carnis_fw-la quam_fw-la prio_fw-la populus_fw-la accepit_fw-la augus_n ibidem_fw-la if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o desire_v divine_a authority_n in_o this_o point_n we_o may_v true_o conjecture_v how_o powerful_a in_o child_n the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v by_o the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o the_o jew_n receive_v and_o this_o be_v account_v by_o 1_o by_o bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr baptism_n c._n 1_o bellarmine_n a_o strong_a argument_n to_o confirm_v this_o point_n in_o the_o next_o testimony_n s._n augustine_n write_v of_o the_o custom_n or_o practice_v of_o not_o rebaptise_v those_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n so_o that_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n say_v 7._o say_v quam_fw-la consueââdinem_fw-la credo_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolic_a traditione_n venientem_fw-la aug_n de_fw-fr baptism_n count_v donat._n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o which_o custom_n i_o believe_v come_v from_o apostolical_a tradition_n ibid._n tradition_n aug._n ibid._n even_o as_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o follow_a age_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o commend_v by_o the_o say_a apostle_n it_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n draw_v from_o custom_n to_o article_n of_o faith_n from_o practice_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o read_v nothing_o for_o point_n of_o practice_n whether_o those_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n have_v be_v rebaptise_v or_o no_o yet_o the_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n be_v sufficient_o teach_v in_o scripture_n we_o believe_v it_o charactere_fw-la it_o propter_fw-la folidissima_fw-la &_o manifestâssrââ_n scripturarum_fw-la fundament_n et_fw-la testimonia_fw-la tiâââaâ_n defence_n triden_n ad_fw-la articul_fw-la de_fw-la
scripture_n and_o the_o father_n and_o find_v this_o for_o truth_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v no_o unwritten_a tradition_n if_o they_o do_v so_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n unless_o the_o jesuite_n can_v prove_v that_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o same_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n deliver_v they_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v so_o so_o they_o do_v in_o their_o miracle_n which_o be_v but_o cozen_v and_o juggle_a trick_n of_o leaguer_n de_fw-fr main_a so_o they_o do_v in_o their_o relic_n which_o be_v but_o grand_a imposture_n as_o the_o angel_n gabriels_n feather_n our_o lady_n smock_n s._n peter_n chain_n and_o the_o like_a these_o i_o believe_v be_v as_o true_a relic_n from_o they_o as_o their_o tradition_n be_v the_o same_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v and_o as_o they_o be_v so_o be_v their_o authority_n which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o his_o next_o section_n wherein_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v sect_n iii_o whether_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o write_a word_n 1._o none_o but_o a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la will_v say_v that_o a_o non_fw-fr ens_fw-la can_v be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o write_a word_n when_o as_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o â_o that_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr âerâo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n â_o all_o tradition_n be_v not_o of_o equal_a authority_n among_o themselves_o but_o without_o any_o distinction_n whatsoever_o this_o jesuite_n will_v have_v they_o all_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o authority_n among_o themselves_o and_o of_o the_o same_o authority_n with_o the_o write_a word_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o be_v no_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o write_a word_n than_o 28._o than_o jer._n 13._o 28._o chaff_n with_o wheat_n than_o dross_n with_o â2_n with_o be_v 1._o â2_n silver_n the_o jesuite_n have_v already_o grant_v this_o 116._o this_o pag._n 116._o that_o the_o rite_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o humane_a right_n and_o now_o he_o contradict_v the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n even_o equal_a with_o the_o write_a word_n and_o for_o this_o opinion_n he_o 120._o reply_v p._n 120._o boast_v of_o plain_a scripture_n and_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o hear_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n claim_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n to_o be_v they_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o heretic_n boast_v that_o 27._o that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d euseb_n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 27._o the_o father_n and_o the_o apostle_n hold_v &_o teach_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o they_o say_v first_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o plain_a scripture_n 15._o scripture_n â_o thes_n â_o 15._o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v fast_o and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n this_o text_n be_v no_o less_o than_o ten_o time_n allege_v by_o he_o and_o once_o for_o all_o i_o return_v this_o answer_n to_o it_o those_o tradition_n be_v 121._o reply_v pag._n 121._o write_v and_o not_o unwritten_a doctrine_n s._n paul_n declare_v his_o continual_a practice_n 22._o practice_n act._n 26._o 22._o he_o witness_v both_o to_o small_a and_o great_a and_o therefore_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o none_o other_o thing_n than_o those_o which_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n do_v say_v his_o doctrine_n deliver_v at_o thessalonica_n be_v take_v 2._o take_v act._n 17._o 2._o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o suppose_v it_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v write_v in_o the_o new_a by_o himself_o or_o by_o some_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n what_o he_o teach_v the_o philippian_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n the_o 1._o the_o philip._n 3._o 1._o same_o thing_n he_o write_v afterward_o unto_o they_o in_o his_o epistle_n and_o unto_o the_o thessalonian_o he_o write_v those_o thing_n 5._o thing_n 2._o thess_n 2._o 5._o which_o he_o first_o tell_v they_o and_o 10._o and_o 2._o thess_n 3._o 10._o which_o he_o first_o command_v they_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d use_v by_o the_o apostle_n signify_v aswell_o both_o as_o whether_o and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o disjunctive_a but_o very_o 8._o very_o 1._o cor._n â1â_n 1â_n c._n 15._o 11._o coloss_n 1._o 20_o rom._n 14._o 8._o oft_o conjunctive_a by_o which_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v this_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n or_o the_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v teach_v you_o both_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n &_o by_o epistle_n the_o matter_n teach_v be_v the_o same_o although_o the_o manner_n of_o teach_v be_v different_a both_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o by_o epistle_n s._n ambrose_n expound_v it_o thus_o thess_n thus_o in_o traditione_n evangelij_fw-la standum_fw-la ac_fw-la perseverandum_fw-la monet_fw-la ambros_n in_o 2._o thess_n he_o admonish_v they_o to_o stand_v &_o to_o persevere_v in_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o gretzer_n your_o great_a sire_n defend_v bellarmine_n defend_v this_o interpretation_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o s._n paul_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o by_o epistle_n and_o give_v this_o instance_n for_o it_o 5_o it_o sicut_fw-la eadem_fw-la fides_fw-la quae_fw-la confirmata_fw-la olim_fw-la fuit_fw-la per_fw-la circumcisionem_fw-la &_o pascha_fw-la quae_fw-la nunc_fw-la confirmatur_fw-la per_fw-la baptismum_fw-la &_o coenam_fw-la gretz_n defence_n bellarm._n l._n 4._o c._n 5_o even_o as_o it_o be_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o be_v former_o confirm_v by_o circumcision_n and_o the_o passeover_n which_o be_v now_o confirm_v by_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n it_o be_v most_o manifest_a by_o the_o precedent_a word_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o such_o tradition_n as_o help_v to_o keep_v out_o 3._o out_o 2._o thess_n 2._o 3._o the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n it_o can_v then_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v speak_v of_o unwritten_a tradition_n because_o popish_a tradition_n be_v the_o only_a key_n to_o let_v he_o in_o 2._o to_o prove_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n he_o first_o allege_v s._n chrysostome_n thess_n chrysostome_n chrysost_n in_fw-ge â_o thess_n by_o this_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v s._n chrysostome_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o 121._o reply_v pag._n 121._o deliver_v all_o thing_n by_o their_o epistle_n but_o that_o they_o deliver_v many_o thing_n without_o writing_n which_o be_v as_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o leave_v write_v we_o yield_v unto_o this_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o deliver_v all_o thing_n by_o writing_n and_o i_o will_v grant_v more_o unto_o the_o jesuite_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o deliver_v all_o thing_n by_o epistle_n or_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n which_o be_v and_o may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n as_o all_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o it_o and_o those_o be_v the_o thing_n of_o which_o s._n chrysostome_n speak_v of_o thing_n indifferent_a concern_v necessary_a thing_n write_v upon_o the_o same_o chapter_n these_o be_v his_o word_n â_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d chrysost_n hom_n 3_o in_o 2._o thes_n â_o all_o thing_n be_v clear_a and_o true_a which_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o necessary_a thing_n be_v manifest_a but_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o be_v deliver_v without_o writing_n shall_v be_v as_o worthy_a of_o faith_n as_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v this_o be_v one_o of_o his_o many_o hyperbolical_a speech_n it_o be_v rather_o a_o flourish_n of_o his_o rhetoric_n than_o a_o truth_n in_o divinity_n s._n basil_n say_v 29._o say_v basil_n de_fw-fr spirit_n sanct._n c._n 29._o i_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a doctrine_n that_o reply_n reply_n we_o adhere_v unto_o unwritten_a tradition_n in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o allege_v scripture_n the_o author_n be_v suspect_v but_o i_o pass_v by_o that_o for_o the_o present_a i_o hold_v with_o the_o author_n that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o yield_v unto_o such_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o he_o write_v of_o and_o those_o be_v only_o ritual_a and_o not_o doctrinal_a unto_o these_o we_o do_v yield_v not_o as_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v of_o divine_a power_n and_o abide_v for_o ever_o but_o as_o to_o the_o law_n of_o man_n which_o be_v of_o humane_a right_n and_o mutable_a according_a unto_o time_n &_o place_n and_o in_o proof_n of_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o those_o we_o oft_o cite_v scripture_n as_o that_o author_n do_v in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o allege_v â_o allege_v that_o of_o epiphan_n be_v answer_v sect._n 2d._o divis_n 10._o light_v â_o s._n hierome_n 4â_n
on_o both_o side_n and_o yet_o these_o and_o many_o such_o thing_n be_v defend_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n 2._o we_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n be_v patron_n of_o tradition_n of_o such_o tradition_n as_o we_o allow_v in_o the_o 4._o the_o sect._n 1_o diâis_fw-la 4._o state_v of_o the_o question_n and_o not_o of_o popish_a tradition_n for_o all_o our_o writer_n have_v dispute_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n against_o unwritten_a doctrinal_a tradition_n learned_a whitaker_n shall_v answer_v for_o himself_o and_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n 1â_n rest_n conâedimus_fw-la defensas_fw-la esse_fw-la traditiones_fw-la à _fw-la patribââ_n sed_fw-la ââ_o modo_fw-la quoth_v dictume_v at_o quod_fw-la aiâ_n patres_fw-la non_fw-la oppugnare_fw-la illud_fw-la falâum_fw-la est_fw-la whââakeâ_n controver_n 1._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la del_fw-it non_fw-la scââpto_fw-la q._n 6._o c._n 1â_n we_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n defend_v tradition_n but_o they_o be_v such_o tradition_n as_o we_o defend_v but_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o oppugn_v tradition_n it_o be_v false_a what_o now_o may_v we_o think_v of_o the_o jesuite_n who_o false_o charge_v both_o the_o father_n and_o our_o writer_n he_o verifi_v the_o say_n the_o monk_n of_o all_o man_n and_o the_o jesuite_n above_o all_o monk_n be_v most_o impudent_a this_o babble_a prater_n or_o prate_a babbler_n may_v brag_v that_o he_o have_v the_o consistory_n of_o antiquity_n and_o that_o we_o be_v the_o babble_a upstart_n we_o can_v tame_v his_o tongue_n from_o rail_v for_o as_o he_o observe_v out_o of_o s._n hilary_n 3._o hilary_n hilar._n de_fw-fr triâiâ_n l_o 3._o desperation_n bring_v always_o with_o itself_o a_o unbridled_a boldness_n and_o profess_a impiety_n leâpeth_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o all_o shame_n this_o be_v true_a of_o he_o although_o s._n hilary_n have_v no_o such_o word_n in_o that_o book_n he_o deserve_v the_o whetstone_n for_o his_o impudent_a lie_v and_o the_o cucking-stool_n for_o his_o shameless_a scold_n and_o for_o his_o excuse_v of_o the_o most_o reverend_a primate_n to_o those_o of_o his_o own_o side_n and_o to_o the_o outlandish_a doctor_n he_o have_v more_o need_n to_o excuse_v himself_o 1._o to_o those_o of_o his_o own_o side_n who_o stand_v for_o the_o perfection_n sufficiency_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n â_o scripture_n scriptura_fw-la sufficleuter_n continet_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la necessariaââ_n viatori-scotus_n in_o prolog_n in_o 1._o sentent_fw-fr â_o â_o the_o scripture_n say_v scotus_n sufficient_o contain_v the_o doctrine_n necessary_a for_o he_o that_o be_v in_o his_o travel_n 9_o travel_n sacra_fw-la scripture_n est_fw-la regula_fw-la fidei_fw-la cvi_fw-la nec_fw-la addere_fw-la nec_fw-la subtrahere_fw-la licet_fw-la aquin_n ãâ¦ã_o be_v 9_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v aquinas_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o which_o we_o must_v not_o add_v and_o from_o which_o we_o must_v not_o subtract_v 3._o subtract_v loquor_fw-la deus_fw-la in_o scripture_n &_o it_o a_o copiose_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la oportet_fw-la deum_fw-la iterum_fw-la loqui_fw-la nobis_fw-la aliquod_fw-la necessarium_fw-la ãâã_d habeantur_fw-la aâton_n part_n â_o 3._o tiâ_n 1â_n c._n 3._o god_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n say_v antoninus_n and_o speak_v so_o copious_o that_o he_o need_v not_o speak_v again_o unto_o we_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a see_v all_o such_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n thus_o god_n have_v make_v the_o 5._o the_o joh._n 1._o 5._o light_a tâ_n shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o how_o can_v the_o jesuite_n reconcile_v himself_o unto_o these_o man_n who_o deny_v that_o which_o they_o affirm_v 2._o to_o all_o the_o outlandish_a doctor_n who_o prefer_v himself_o &_o all_o his_o countryman_n before_o all_o other_o writer_n of_o what_o country_n soever_o that_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o benign_a and_o bless_a influence_n which_o it_o please_v the_o heaven_n to_o distil_v into_o the_o irish_a disposition_n this_o be_v good_a divinity_n the_o heaven_n distil_v this_o influence_n of_o grace_n the_o outlandish_a doctor_n be_v behold_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o good_a opinion_n of_o they_o in_o that_o ireland_n or_o the_o irish_a disposition_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o influence_n before_o all_o other_o country_n and_o countryman_n whatsoever_o this_o be_v to_o make_v all_o other_o place_n and_o person_n like_o 21._o like_o â_o sam._n 1_o 21._o the_o mountain_n of_o gilboa_n upon_o which_o there_o fall_v neither_o dew_n nor_o rain_n and_o only_a ireland_n to_o be_v like_o the_o 1â3_n reply_v pag._n 112._o 1â3_n hill_n of_o â_o of_o psal_n 133._o â_o hermon_n the_o dew_n whereof_o water_v other_o hill_n and_o how_o shall_v we_o excuse_v he_o in_o these_o thing_n 1_o be_v please_v to_o remember_v that_o he_o leave_v his_o native_a soil_n and_o wenâ_n over_o sea_n to_o write_v this_o book_n by_o mean_n whereof_o he_o leât_v his_o wit_n behind_o he_o and_o deprive_v himself_o of_o this_o bless_a influence_n if_o he_o have_v remain_v at_o home_n he_o may_v perhaps_o have_v receive_v some_o of_o this_o benign_a influence_n which_o it_o please_v the_o heaven_n to_o distil_v upon_o his_o native_a climate_n 2._o that_o those_o of_o his_o own_o side_n speak_v of_o the_o susticiency_n of_o scripture_n in_o thing_n necessary_a in_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n but_o he_o deny_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n in_o ritual_a point_n which_o be_v the_o tradition_n which_o he_o defend_v this_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o examine_n of_o his_o next_o section_n which_o be_v sect_n four_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n 1._o the_o subject_n of_o this_o and_o of_o the_o former_a section_n be_v the_o same_o and_o therefore_o i_o will_v answer_v the_o jesuite_n as_o s._n augustine_n do_v julian_n upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n 18_o occasion_n replicas_fw-la quae_fw-la superiore_fw-la disputatione_n consumpta_fw-la âunt_fw-la august_n count_v julian._n l._n 4._o c._n 18_o thou_o reply_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v already_o confute_v we_o 1._o we_o sect._n 2._o d._n 1._o have_v answer_v the_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o infallibility_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n &_o yet_o here_o again_o the_o jesuite_n renew_v it_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v err_v and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o she_o deliver_v 1â4_n reply_v p._n 1â4_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o interpretation_n of_o any_o obscure_a passage_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v believe_v it_o as_o fire_n as_o that_o s._n johns_n gospel_n be_v scripture_n sir_n you_o reckon_v without_o your_o host_n for_o the_o catholic_a church_n never_o teach_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o according_a to_o your_o own_o say_n and_o tenant_n unwritten_a tradition_n be_v of_o no_o authority_n for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n for_o if_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o must_v give_v authority_n to_o a_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o if_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v not_o then_o be_v hear_v but_o in_o a_o general_a council_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o general_a council_n until_o about_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n what_o nature_n or_o quality_n what_o credit_n or_o authority_n have_v unwritten_a tradition_n until_o that_o time_n tradition_n likewise_o which_o be_v particular_a not_o observe_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o only_o in_o some_o church_n which_o by_o your_o doctrine_n be_v parcel_n of_o the_o unwritten_a wordâ_n must_v needs_o want_v their_o authority_n because_o they_o be_v not_o deliver_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n neither_o be_v any_o church_n on_o earth_n so_o infallible_a as_o that_o it_o can_v err_v in_o delivery_n of_o a_o tradition_n or_o exposition_n of_o a_o obscure_a passage_n of_o scripture_n the_o church_n which_o he_o mean_v have_v err_v in_o many_o foolish_a and_o ridiculous_a exposition_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o that_o exposition_n which_o be_v so_o famous_a among_o the_o franciscan_n upon_o this_o text_n revel_v 7._o 2._o from_o the_o east_n that_o be_v 1._o be_v ab_fw-la ortu_fw-la solis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la decivitaâate_fw-la assissij_n in_o oriente_n posita_fw-la asceâdit_fw-la angelus_n id_fw-la est_fw-la franciscus_n puritate_fw-la &_o sanctitate_fw-la angelis_n consiâoilis_fw-la cum_fw-la signo_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la stigmatibus_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la conformit_fw-la francis_n l._n 1._o from_o the_o city_n assissium_fw-la which_o be_v in_o the_o east_n the_o angel_n ascend_v that_o be_v francis_z like_z unto_o the_o angel_n in_o purity_n and_o sanctity_n with_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n that_o be_v with_o the_o wound_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v this_o exposition_n as_o true_a as_o s._n johns_n gospel_n beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v diverse_a argument_n to_o persuade_v i_o that_o s._n johns_n gospel_n be_v canonical_a the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o argument_n and_o such_o a_o one_o
as_o may_v sometime_o deceive_v a_o man_n and_o therefore_o though_o the_o exposition_n be_v true_a yet_o how_o can_v i_o be_v as_o sure_o that_o it_o be_v true_a as_o i_o be_o that_o s._n johns_n gospel_n be_v canonical_a i_o like_v better_o of_o that_o say_n of_o marsilius_n 19_o marsilius_n dict_n a_o christi_fw-la five_o dei_fw-la non_fw-la vera_fw-la sunt_fw-la causaliter_fw-la âo_o quod_fw-la âiâdem_fw-la testificatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la vero_fw-la testimonio_fw-la sed_fw-la testimonium_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la causaliter_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la dum_fw-la dicit_fw-la dicta_fw-la christi_fw-la vera_fw-la propteâ_n veâtatem_fw-la dictorum_fw-la christi_fw-la marsil_n desensor_n pacis_fw-la part_n 2._o cap._n 19_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o god_n be_v not_o therefore_o make_v true_a because_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o a_o true_a testimony_n give_v her_o testimony_n unto_o they_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v therefore_o true_a when_o she_o speak_v the_o true_a word_n of_o christ_n because_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n word_n and_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v 5._o say_v august_n count_v epist_n fundament_n c._n 5._o that_o he_o beleevea_fw-mi the_o gospel_n 114._o reply_v pag._n 114._o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n so_o be_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n which_o the_o church_n propound_v unto_o we_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o i_o wish_v our_o adversary_n to_o consider_v two_o thing_n which_o make_v the_o meaning_n of_o s._n augustine_n most_o evident_a 1._o that_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n dâ_n church_n augustinus_n ibidem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la sumit_fw-la proâ_n primitive_a congregatione_fw-la fidelium_fw-la qui_fw-la christum_fw-la viderunt_fw-la audierunt_fw-la &_o svi_fw-la testes_fw-la suerunt_fw-la gerson_n de_fw-fr vitâ_fw-la spirit_n lect_v 2_o dâ_n s._n augustine_n say_v gerson_n in_o that_o place_n take_v the_o church_n for_o the_o primitive_a congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o do_v see_v hear_v and_o be_v witness_n of_o christ_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n have_v you_o the_o same_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o that_o church_n have_v your_o own_o driedo_n tell_v you_o no._n 4._o no._n ecclesia_fw-la primitiva_fw-la propter_fw-la collegium_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la majoris_fw-la erat_fw-la gratiae_fw-la majorisque_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quaenunc_fw-la est_fw-la driedo_n de_fw-fr dogma_fw-la l._n â_o c._n 4._o the_o primitive_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o great_a grace_n and_o of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o church_n which_o now_o be_v if_o the_o jesuite_n speak_v of_o the_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o that_o church_n we_o refuse_v they_o not_o let_v he_o prove_v this_o or_o that_o to_o be_v a_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o will_v believe_v it_o but_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n his_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o as_o s._n augustine_n believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n so_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o tradition_n teach_v by_o she_o 2._o that_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n why_o he_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n s._n augustine_n have_v be_v for_o nine_o year_n a_o manichee_n and_o now_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o manichee_n to_o convert_v they_o he_o propound_v unto_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o move_v they_o even_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o heresy_n it_o move_v he_o this_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n past_a i_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o move_v i_o but_o afterward_o be_v convert_v and_o make_v a_o bishop_n he_o make_v a_o better_a confession_n say_v 5._o say_v i_o be_o credere_fw-la coeperam_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la te_fw-la fuisse_fw-la tributurum_fw-la tam_fw-la excellen_v tem_fw-la illi_fw-la scripturae_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la jam_fw-la terras_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la ipsam_fw-la tibi_fw-la credi_fw-la &_o per_fw-la ipsam_fw-la te_fw-la quaeri_fw-la voluâsses_n aug._n confess_v l._n â_o c._n 5._o now_o i_o begin_v to_o believe_v that_o thou_o will_v not_o have_v give_v so_o excellent_a authority_n unto_o the_o scripture_n itself_o âver_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o that_o by_o it_o thou_o will_v be_v believe_v and_o by_o it_o thou_o will_v be_v seek_v this_o be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o good_a motive_n to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o doctor_n that_o can_v give_v such_o law_n as_o shall_v be_v equal_a with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n s._n augustine_n confess_v that_o he_o have_v a_o other_o motive_n to_o persuade_v he_o to_o believe_v beside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 11._o church_n she_o carthagine_v motum_fw-la esse_fw-la disputatione_n cujusdam_fw-la elpidij_fw-la cvi_fw-la manichâi_fw-la imbeâilla_fw-la responsione_n restiterint_fw-la august_n confess_v l._n 5._o c_o 11._o be_v at_o carthage_n he_o be_v move_v to_o believe_v by_o the_o disputation_n of_o one_o elpidius_n who_o argument_n the_o manichee_n be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v but_o every_o mover_n be_v not_o a_o lawgiver_n 1._o lawgiver_n 1._o pet._n 3._o 1._o the_o honest_a conversation_n of_o the_o wife_n may_v move_v the_o husband_n to_o believe_v must_v he_o therefore_o believe_v whatsoever_o she_o shall_v say_v i_o may_v aswell_o infer_v thus_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o jew_n move_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o old_a testament_n therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v their_o cabbala_n their_o masore_v and_o all_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n we_o be_v willing_a to_o 21._o to_o math._n 22._o 21._o give_v unto_o cesar_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n and_o unto_o god_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o we_o give_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o ministry_n to_o allure_v we_o and_o to_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o scripture_n the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n to_o be_v the_o only_a word_n of_o god_n if_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o preserve_v the_o sacred_a 124_o reply_v pag_n 124_o writing_n but_o also_o to_o deliver_v the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o they_o why_o shall_v she_o not_o be_v likewise_o bind_v to_o preserve_v the_o sacred_a tradition_n and_o to_o deliver_v the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n in_o they_o contain_v and_o why_o shall_v not_o we_o receive_v they_o upon_o her_o credit_n 3._o if_o unwritten_a tradition_n have_v be_v commit_v to_o her_o trust_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o she_o ought_v to_o preserve_v they_o and_o to_o deliver_v they_o as_o she_o receive_v they_o to_o keep_v nothing_o back_o but_o to_o deliver_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n and_o to_o teach_v the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n whether_o write_v or_o unwritten_a but_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v no_o wholesome_a doctrine_n they_o be_v part_n of_o that_o poisonous_a potion_n that_o bewitch_a doctrine_n which_o be_v in_o the_o golden_a cup_n of_o that_o glorious_a religion_n for_o outward_a show_n of_o the_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n of_o rome_n and_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o church_n receive_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o that_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o teach_v they_o yet_o how_o can_v i_o be_v assure_v that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o true_a tradition_n as_o sure_a as_o i_o be_o of_o any_o write_a article_n of_o my_o faith_n that_o christ_n die_v i_o believe_v because_o the_o scripture_n say_v it_o that_o this_o be_v a_o tradition_n you_o believe_v it_o because_o a_o father_n the_o father_n or_o the_o church_n say_v it_o can_v a_o man_n believe_v that_o testimony_n which_o may_v be_v false_a as_o sure_a as_o he_o beleive_v that_o cvi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la subesse_fw-la falsum_fw-la no_o humane_a testimony_n can_v beget_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o full_a assurance_n which_o a_o divine_a testimony_n do_v 7._o do_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n clemons_n alex._n strom._n 1._o 7._o we_o regard_v not_o a_o humane_a testimony_n let_v we_o confirm_v the_o question_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o sure_a demonstration_n yea_o the_o only_a demonstration_n say_v clemens_n of_o alexandria_n it_o be_v 19_o be_v 2._o pet._n 1._o 19_o more_o sure_a than_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n and_o of_o angel_n epiphanius_n lay_v down_o these_o for_o the_o limit_n and_o bound_n 125_o reply_v pag._n 125_o of_o our_o faith_n 55._o faith_n epiph_n hâres_v 55._o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n by_o which_o god_n truth_n be_v fortify_v on_o every_o side_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v deceive_v with_o fabulous_a novelty_n 4._o none_o of_o the_o ancient_n be_v more_o deceive_v with_o
it_o be_v a_o diabolical_a spirit_n that_o think_v that_o any_o one_o thing_n from_o god_n shall_v be_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n say_v theophilus_n of_o alexandria_n the_o secular_a priest_n say_v that_o jesuite_n be_v 3._o be_v quodlibet_n 3._o art_n 3._o statist_n atheist_n judass_n other_o say_v that_o their_o denomination_n from_o jesuita_fw-la from_o ut_fw-la à _fw-la luce_fw-fr lucus_fw-la dictus_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la homo_fw-la est_fw-la bâmo_fw-la pictus_fw-la siâ_n à _fw-la jesu_fw-la jesuita_fw-la jesu_n ita_fw-la be_v a_o contrary_a for_o they_o be_v more_o like_a esavite_n gehezites_n or_o jebusite_n and_o i_o may_v say_v the_o devil_n be_v a_o invisible_a jesuite_n &_o jesuite_n be_v visible_a devil_n &_o yet_o they_o will_v be_v man_n of_o god_n second_o where_o be_v it_o find_v that_o all_o this_o counsel_n of_o god_n be_v âver_o yet_o write_v or_o that_o s._n paul_n in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o speak_v aswell_o of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n as_o of_o the_o write_a word_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n 13._o we_o find_v that_o s._n paul_n submit_v all_o his_o doctrine_n to_o reply_n reply_n be_v 11._o be_v act._n 17._o 11._o try_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o preach_v nothing_o but_o what_o 22._o what_o â_o 2d_o 22._o be_v write_v and_o that_o make_v confession_n of_o his_o faith_n he_o say_v 14._o say_v c._n 24._o 14._o i_o believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v and_o if_o he_o have_v believe_v unwritten_a tradition_n he_o will_v have_v add_v and_o i_o believe_v all_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n but_o see_v he_o believe_v none_o of_o these_o how_o can_v he_o speak_v of_o a_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o like_a to_o a_o sick_a man_n nuncupative_a will_n of_o which_o some_o be_v write_v &_o some_o be_v unwritten_a only_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a will_n &_o testament_n it_o need_v not_o addition_n of_o thing_n unwritten_a three_o by_o all_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n mean_v only_o the_o old_a 133_o reply_v pag._n 133_o testament_n he_o than_o that_o be_v well_o see_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n alone_o have_v he_o knowledge_n of_o the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n 14._o in_o the_o eight_o division_n of_o this_o section_n we_o have_v show_v the_o contrary_a but_o suppose_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n be_v so_o what_o do_v it_o make_v for_o the_o jesuit_n david_n have_v but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v his_o â4_n his_o ps_n 11_o ãâã_d â4_n counsellor_n yet_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v so_o large_a that_o he_o can_v see_v â6_n see_v verse_n â6_n no_o end_n of_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o that_o by_o it_o 99_o it_o verse_n 99_o he_o have_v more_o understanding_n than_o all_o his_o teacher_n and_o that_o by_o it_o he_o 101._o he_o verse_n 101._o refrain_v his_o foot_n from_o every_o evil_a way_n thus_o by_o it_o alone_o he_o understand_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n again_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v all_o scripture_n the_o particle_n reply_n reply_n all_o signify_v distributive_o every_o parcel_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o not_o the_o whole_a scripture_n together_o collective_o but_o our_o adversary_n will_v not_o say_v that_o every_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o every_o parcel_n of_o a_o book_n or_o chapter_n be_v able_a to_o instruct_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n perfect_o 15._o this_o be_v ad_fw-la paucarespicere_fw-la to_o stop_v one_o gap_n and_o to_o open_v ten_o for_o it_o overthrow_v all_o his_o distinction_n 1._o that_o of_o mediate_v and_o immediate_a sufficiency_n for_o every_o parcel_n of_o every_o chapter_n of_o scripture_n have_v not_o a_o mediate_a sufficiency_n itself_o to_o make_v we_o wise_a by_o send_v we_o unto_o christ_n neither_o do_v every_o parcel_n send_v we_o unto_o the_o church_n from_o she_o to_o learn_v tradition_n 2._o that_o of_o counsel_n write_v and_o unwritten_a for_o every_o parcel_n of_o every_o chapter_n do_v not_o contain_v all_o the_o write_a counsel_n 3._o that_o of_o profitablenesse_n and_o sufficiency_n for_o every_o parcel_n of_o a_o chapter_n be_v not_o profitable_a itself_o for_o those_o four_o use_n to_o teach_v reprove_v correct_v and_o instruct_v 4._o that_o of_o the_o man_n of_o god_n &_o a_o godly_a man_n for_o every_o parcel_n be_v not_o profitable_a to_o enable_v a_o godly_a man_n to_o every_o good_a work_n this_o be_v to_o grant_v we_o more_o than_o we_o desire_v that_o every_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a for_o these_o four_o use_n how_o much_o more_o than_o be_v the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n profitable_a unto_o the_o same_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d all_o scripture_n be_v take_v here_o for_o the_o whole_a body_n or_o canon_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n athanasius_n use_v the_o same_o word_n when_o he_o say_v syrup_n say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d athanas_n in_o syrup_n all_o scripture_n or_o the_o whole_a scripture_n translate_v it_o as_o you_o please_v of_o we_o christian_n be_v inspire_v of_o god_n and_o then_o he_o add_v and_o contain_v certain_a book_n contain_v in_o a_o certain_a canon_n thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d with_o athanasius_n be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a canon_n and_o not_o for_o every_o parcel_n for_o every_o parcel_n have_v not_o certain_a book_n omnis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la totâ_n be_v the_o usual_a note_n upon_o this_o place_n but_o estius_n be_v most_o plain_a duaâ_n plain_a non_fw-la id_fw-la velle_fw-la apostolum_n quod_fw-la una_fw-la quââque_fw-la pars_fw-la scripturââ_n sit_fw-la utilis_fw-la âd_a istâ_n quatuor_n hic_fw-la ânim_fw-la sensus_fw-la liq_n âdo_fw-la salsus_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o universa_fw-la scriptura_fw-la ãâã_d quatuor_fw-la utilitates_fw-la reperiantur_fw-la guil._n âstius_fw-la professor_n duaâ_n the_o apostle_n meaning_n be_v not_o this_o that_o every_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a for_o these_o four_o for_o this_o sense_n be_v manifest_o false_a but_o that_o these_o four_o profit_n be_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n here_o the_o jesuite_n insult_o tax_v we_o for_o minch_v mangle_a and_o chap_a of_o the_o scripture_n when_o himself_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o of_o chap_a the_o whole_a scripture_n into_o several_a parcel_n of_o a_o book_n and_o of_o a_o chapter_n moreover_o he_o seem_v to_o infer_v a_o sufficiency_n where_o mention_n 133._o reply_v p._n 133._o be_v make_v only_o of_o a_o profitableness_n all_o divine_a scripture_n say_v s._n paul_n be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v hence_o our_o answerer_n deduce_v that_o nothing_o else_o be_v requisite_a to_o teach_v 16._o the_o jesuite_n deal_v not_o sincere_o with_o his_o answerer_n when_o he_o not_o only_o seem_v to_o chap_v but_o do_v mangle_v this_o argument_n as_o he_o do_v former_o the_o scripture_n s._n paul_n say_v the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n by_o the_o scripture_n hence_o the_o answerer_n infer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o word_n of_o god_n which_o the_o man_n of_o god_n who_o must_v declare_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n be_v bind_v to_o teach_v s._n paul_n set_v forth_o at_o large_a the_o profitablenesse_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o four_o use_n to_o teach_v to_o reprove_v to_o correct_v and_o to_o instruct_v and_o show_v how_o full_o and_o sufficient_o it_o do_v these_o even_o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n but_o the_o jesuite_n repeat_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n diminish_v the_o profitablenesse_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o account_v it_o profitable_a to_o teach_v and_o explain_v this_o of_o send_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o christ_n send_v we_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o disciple_n bid_v as_o to_o hold_v fast_o unwritten_a tradition_n if_o this_o be_v all_o the_o profitablenesse_n of_o the_o scripture_n than_o there_o be_v little_a sufficiency_n in_o it_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o profitablenesse_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v for_o all_o scripture_n that_o be_v as_o the_o jesuite_n expound_v it_o every_o parcel_n of_o a_o book_n and_o of_o a_o chapter_n do_v not_o send_v we_o unto_o christ_n christ_n unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o disciple_n unto_o unwritten_a tradition_n neither_o do_v the_o answerer_n infer_v a_o sufficiency_n from_o a_o bare_a profitableness_n the_o word_n profitableness_n or_o sufficiency_n be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o his_o argument_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v therefore_o nothing_o else_o be_v requisite_a to_o teach_v for_o this_o be_v manifest_o false_a let_v the_o scripture_n be_v never_o so_o profitable_a and_o sufficient_a yet_o some_o thing_n else_o be_v require_v to_o teach_v there_o be_v require_v a_o 14._o a_o act._n 8._o 31._o rom._n 10._o 14._o teacher_n yea_o though_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v admit_v yet_o
there_o must_v be_v one_o to_o teach_v they_o in_o this_o teacher_n learning_n be_v require_v because_o it_o be_v profitable_a yet_o not_o sufficient_a to_o enable_v he_o to_o teach_v but_o thus_o we_o argue_v that_o that_o be_v so_o profitable_a to_o to_o teach_v to_o reprove_v to_o correct_v and_o to_o instruct_v that_o thereby_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n that_o we_o say_v be_v sufficient_a omne_fw-la sufficiens_fw-la est_fw-la utile_fw-la this_o proposition_n be_v most_o certain_a whatsoever_o be_v sufficient_a be_v profitable_a and_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o to_o be_v convert_v omne_fw-la utile_fw-la est_fw-la sufficiens_fw-la northus_fw-la nullum_fw-la utile_fw-la est_fw-la sufficiens_fw-la but_o thus_o aliquod_fw-la utile_fw-la est_fw-la sufficiens_fw-la something_o that_o be_v profitable_a be_v sufficient_a so_o be_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o profitable_a every_o way_n that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v sufficient_a in_o svo_fw-la genere_fw-la for_o that_o end_n there_o need_v no_o unwritten_a word_n to_o be_v teach_v such_o a_o profitable_a thing_n be_v godliness_n that_o it_o be_v likewise_o sufficient_a it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o instance_n which_o the_o jesuite_n give_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a because_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v profitable_a godliness_n say_v he_o be_v profitable_a for_o all_o thing_n be_v it_o therefore_o so_o sufficient_a that_o nothing_o else_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o neither_o meat_n drink_n sleep_n etc._n etc._n the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o prove_v what_o be_v both_o profitable_a and_o sufficient_a for_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o promise_n especial_o of_o the_o life_n eternal_a can_v it_o be_v deny_v that_o godliness_n in_o svo_fw-la genere_fw-la be_v both_o profitable_a and_o sufficient_a for_o this_o as_o for_o meat_n drink_n sleep_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v help_n of_o a_o other_o kind_n they_o be_v needful_a for_o a_o godly_a man_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o weak_a nature_n to_o maintain_v his_o natural_a life_n but_o not_o needful_a to_o perfect_a godliness_n to_o attain_v eternal_a life_n as_o godliness_n be_v both_o profitable_a &_o sufficient_a for_o that_o end_n so_o be_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o end_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v although_o help_v of_o any_o other_o kind_n be_v require_v the_o jesuite_n give_v a_o other_o instance_n learning_n say_v he_o be_v profitable_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o therefore_o sufficient_a i_o confess_v it_o be_v not_o be_v therefore_o the_o scripture_n not_o sufficient_a but_o only_o profitable_a because_o some_o thing_n be_v profitable_a but_o not_o sufficient_a i_o pray_v you_o in_o what_o mood_n or_o figure_n be_v this_o syllogism_n some_o thing_n which_o be_v profitable_a be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a therefore_o not_o sufficient_a if_o learning_n be_v as_o profitable_a as_o the_o scripture_n be_v than_o it_o be_v sufficient_a but_o it_o be_v not_o by_o it_o the_o man_n of_o god_n can_v be_v perfect_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n final_o you_o either_o ignorant_o or_o wilful_o pervert_v and_o 134._o reply_v p._n 134._o deprave_v the_o sonse_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n when_o make_v he_o to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n you_o interpret_v this_o good_a work_n to_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o god_n word_n but_o paul_n meaning_n be_v far_o otherwise_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o reprove_v to_o correct_v and_o instruct_v in_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o godly_a man_n thus_o instruct_v may_v be_v perfect_a in_o his_o godly_a life_n and_o enable_v to_o every_o good_a work_n not_o so_o much_o of_o preach_v and_o teach_v as_o of_o justice_n and_o righteousness_n wherein_o he_o be_v instruct_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 17._o for_o want_v of_o new_a shift_n the_o jesuite_n be_v force_v to_o return_v to_o his_o old_a shift_n but_o we_o have_v section_n have_v divis_n 12._o of_o this_o section_n already_o start_v he_o out_o of_o this_o hole_n and_o show_v that_o by_o the_o man_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n mean_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n but_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n that_o a_o godly_a man_n be_v instruct_v by_o other_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v make_v perfeet_n in_o his_o godly_a life_n and_o enable_v to_o every_o good_a work_n what_o need_v we_o more_o or_o what_o need_n then_o be_v there_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n if_o not_o only_o initiative_o but_o perfect_o a_o godly_a life_n &_o every_o good_a work_n may_v be_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n this_o contradict_v his_o former_a distinction_n of_o perfect_o &_o initiative_o &_o quite_o overthrow_v unwritten_a tradition_n the_o great_a pillar_n of_o popery_n unless_o the_o jesuite_n have_v this_o mental_a reservation_n that_o there_o be_v one_o faith_n for_o the_o pastor_n and_o a_o other_o faith_n for_o the_o people_n one_o perfection_n for_o the_o man_n of_o god_n and_o a_o other_o perfection_n for_o a_o godly_a man_n one_o law_n of_o work_n for_o the_o priest_n and_o a_o other_o for_o the_o laiety_n in_o the_o last_o place_n he_o come_v to_o his_o wrestle_a argument_n as_o he_o term_v it_o of_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v as_o confident_a as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o invincible_a armado_n and_o yet_o with_o a_o blast_n it_o may_v be_v overthrow_v when_o you_o affirm_v that_o the_o write_a word_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a 134_o reply_v pag._n 134_o for_o faith_n and_o salvation_n you_o must_v mean_v either_o the_o entire_a scripture_n whole_o take_v together_o or_o some_o one_o part_n thereof_o only_o if_o the_o former_a than_o you_o have_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n leave_v you_o forasmuch_o as_o many_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v lose_v and_o perish_v as_o the_o 32._o the_o 3._o king_n 4._o 32._o three_o thousand_o parable_n and_o the_o five_o thousand_o verse_n write_v by_o solomon_n 29._o solomon_n 1._o paralip_n 29._o 29._o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n and_o gad_n the_o book_n of_o ahia_n and_o the_o 29._o the_o â_o paralip_n 9_o 29._o vision_n of_o the_o prophet_n addo_n 18._o we_o mean_v as_o s._n paul_n mean_v the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o entire_a scripture_n whole_o take_v together_o of_o which_o if_o any_o part_n be_v lose_v it_o be_v lose_v before_o s._n paul_n write_v this_o yet_o the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v remain_v still_o we_o believe_v not_o that_o many_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v lose_v and_o perish_v no_o nor_o any_o as_o for_o that_o of_o solomon_n the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v that_o solomon_n write_v but_o that_o he_o 32._o he_o 1._o king_n 4._o 32._o speak_v three_o thousand_o parable_n and_o a_o thousand_o and_o five_o not_o five_o thousand_o song_n it_o may_v be_v they_o be_v write_v yet_o see_v the_o proverbes_n contain_v 974._o verse_n ecclesiastes_n 222_o and_o the_o canticle_n 116_o in_o all_o 1312._o verse_n and_o many_o verse_n contain_v three_o or_o four_o say_n those_o thing_n therefore_o may_v be_v contain_v in_o they_o the_o book_n of_o nathan_n gad_n ahia_n and_o addo_n be_v suppose_v by_o synopsi_n by_o ãâã_d semens_n bibl._n sanct._n l._n a._n dorothens_n in_o synopsi_n some_o to_o be_v parcel_n of_o the_o book_n of_o samuel_n king_n and_o chronicle_n each_o of_o they_o write_v the_o act_n and_o mowment_n of_o those_o king_n under_o who_o they_o live_v all_o these_o may_v be_v lose_v and_o yet_o not_o many_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n lose_v because_o those_o of_o solomon_n as_o it_o may_v be_v be_v neither_o write_v nor_o canonical_a and_o those_o of_o nathan_n gad_n etc._n etc._n be_v write_v but_o not_o canonical_a 38._o canonical_a alia_fw-la sicuti_fw-la homines_fw-la histericâ_fw-la diligentiâ_fw-la alia_fw-la sicut_fw-la prophetas_fw-la divinâ_n inspiratione_n scribere_fw-la potuisse_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr civitat_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 18._o c._n 38._o some_o thing_n say_v s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o prophet_n they_o may_v write_v by_o way_n of_o history_n as_o man_n other_o thing_n by_o divine_a inspiration_n as_o prophet_n and_o the_o jesuite_n sanctius_n who_o book_n this_o jesuite_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o bear_v say_v reg._n say_v sanctius_n iââolegom_n in_o l._n reg._n these_o book_n of_o nathan_n ad_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v like_o diaries_n or_o a_o ephemerides_n in_o which_o the_o act_n of_o their_o time_n be_v write_v and_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o choice_n thing_n in_o they_o be_v transcribe_v by_o the_o penman_n of_o the_o king_n and_o chronicle_n and_o that_o the_o remainder_n which_o
a_o other_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o scripture_n if_o the_o jesuit_n will_v say_v no_o more_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n than_o athanasius_n say_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n than_o the_o controversy_n be_v end_v for_o you_o see_v he_o bring_v not_o the_o commentary_n into_o the_o text_n but_o distinguish_v between_o the_o commentary_n &_o the_o text_n you_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o one_o &_o the_o other_o but_o make_v the_o interpretation_n 124._o pag._n 124._o as_o authentical_a as_o the_o text_n even_o as_o s._n johns_n gospel_n he_o attribute_v unto_o the_o scripture_n the_o sufficiency_n to_o discover_v all_o truth_n to_o be_v learn_v &_o to_o the_o father_n the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n as_o a_o help_n that_o the_o same_o truth_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o learn_v you_o attribute_v to_o the_o scripture_n a_o sufficiency_n only_o to_o teach_v some_o truth_n not_o all_o truth_n which_o be_v to_o be_v learn_v &_o teach_v that_o those_o truth_n must_v be_v teach_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n unwritten_a tradition_n be_v not_o therefore_o only_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n but_o even_o addition_n to_o it_o in_o the_o last_o place_n he_o object_v out_o of_o athanasius_n in_o this_o manner_n athanasius_n dispute_v against_o the_o arian_n do_v most_o frequent_o 119._o reply_v p._n 119._o beat_v they_o down_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n &_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n yea_o he_o think_v it_o epicteâ_n it_o athanas_n epist_n ad_fw-la epicteâ_n sufficient_a for_o their_o confutation_n to_o tell_v they_o without_o any_o more_o ado_n that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholickâ_n church_n nor_o yet_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o father_n of_o former_a age_n i_o think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o your_o confutation_n to_o tell_v you_o opârtet_fw-la mendacem_fw-la esse_fw-la memorem_fw-la you_o tell_v we_o even_o now_o in_o your_o second_o answer_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o discovery_n of_o two_o truth_n whereof_o one_o be_v this_o that_o christ_n be_v true_o god_n do_v not_o the_o arianâ_n deny_v this_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o now_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o arian_n can_v not_o be_v everthrowne_v but_o only_o by_o the_o help_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n sir_n where_o be_v your_o memory_n when_o you_o write_v this_o yet_o for_o your_o more_o full_a confutation_n i_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o say_v the_o fââth_v confirm_v in_o the_o nicen_n council_n at_o which_o he_o be_v present_a according_a to_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o beat_v down_o the_o arian_n heresy_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o declare_v his_o mind_n say_v monach_n say_v athanas_n in_o exhort_v ad_fw-la monach_n let_v we_o think_v that_o the_o well_o order_a canon_n be_v sufficient_a to_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o likewise_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n do_v he_o confute_v they_o now_o good_a sr_n wiseacre_n tell_v i_o in_o your_o wisdom_n if_o this_o holy_a father_n have_v only_o use_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o beat_v down_o the_o arian_n heresy_n will_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o can_v not_o beat_v it_o down_o by_o the_o scripture_n do_v the_o use_n of_o one_o mean_n exclude_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o other_o because_o now_o we_o be_v beat_v down_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o the_o father_n have_v we_o not_o or_o can_v we_o not_o therefore_o beat_v they_o down_o by_o the_o scripture_n see_v the_o arian_n hold_v such_o a_o wicked_a and_o manifest_o perverse_a a_o doctrine_n therefore_o say_v this_o holy_a father_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o tell_v they_o etc._n etc._n so_o we_o think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o confutation_n of_o unwritten_a doctrine_n to_o tell_v you_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o yet_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o father_n of_o former_a age_n so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o by_o it_o we_o condemn_v this_o new_a doctrine_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n again_o âuseb_fw-mi again_o idem_fw-la the_o decret_a synod_n nic._n count_v âuseb_fw-mi let_v the_o arian_n answer_v i_o if_o they_o can_v where_o do_v â4â_n reply_v p._n â4â_n they_o fiade_n in_o the_o scripture_n this_o solemn_a word_n &_o by_o what_o reason_n do_v they_o hold_v god_n to_o be_v unbegotten_a behold_v we_o have_v evident_a demonstration_n that_o this_o our_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n by_o the_o father_n we_o confess_v with_o athanasius_n that_o the_o word_n unbegotten_a or_o coessential_a be_v noâ_n write_v but_o yet_o the_o doctrine_n signify_v by_o these_o word_n as_o we_o have_v 1â_n have_v sect._n 4._o divis_n 1â_n former_o show_v be_v write_v in_o other_o word_n be_v the_o doctrine_n unwritten_a because_o the_o word_n be_v unwritten_a and_o be_v the_o doctrine_n not_o teach_v in_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n â_o athanasius_n shall_v answer_v for_o we_o ariaâ_n we_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d athanas_n epistol_n de_fw-fr senten_n diony_n con_v ariaâ_n although_o i_o can_v find_v that_o word_n in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o gather_v the_o doctrine_n ouâ_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o know_v that_o he_o that_o be_v the_o son_n and_o the_o word_n can_v be_v of_o a_o other_o substance_n than_o the_o father_n last_o orthodox_n last_o idem_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la ubique_fw-la orthodox_n the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v no_o novelty_n late_o bring_v in_o but_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o our_o first_o father_n neither_o do_v our_o faith_n now_o begin_v but_o it_o descend_v from_o our_o lord_n by_o his_o disciple_n unto_o we_o when_o the_o arian_n persecution_n be_v so_o hot_a against_o the_o catholic_n as_o that_o athanasius_n be_v thrust_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n and_o a_o arian_n by_o simony_n purchase_v it_o than_o this_o holy_a father_n write_v this_o epistle_n this_o make_v he_o complain_v 140._o reply_v p._n 140._o that_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n be_v overthrow_v and_o a_o new_a faith_n set_v up_o by_o these_o intruder_n what_o do_v this_o make_v for_o unwritten_a tradition_n if_o it_o be_v because_o the_o church_n have_v constitution_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o these_o be_v nihil_fw-la ad_fw-la rem_fw-la no_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v because_o our_o faith_n descend_v from_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o disciple_n unto_o we_o we_o grant_v this_o likewise_o but_o what_o be_v this_o even_o the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v first_o by_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o after_o preach_v viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-mi by_o the_o church_n we_o plead_v for_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o be_v at_o onâe_n deliver_v unto_o the_o saint_n we_o acknowledge_v no_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o from_o christ_n by_o his_o disciple_n be_v descend_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n in_o after_o age_n have_v any_o power_n to_o coin_v a_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n with_o you_o be_v the_o novelty_n tradition_n of_o a_o late_a invention_n not_o so_o old_a as_o from_o the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n nor_o descend_v from_o our_o lord_n by_o his_o disciple_n you_o have_v coin_a many_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n what_o will_v you_o say_v for_o your_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n which_o you_o make_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o faith_n &_o authority_n with_o the_o write_a word_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o athanasius_n they_o can_v be_v point_n of_o faith_n because_o our_o faith_n descend_v from_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o disciple_n unto_o we_o s._n ambrose_n 23_o ambrose_n s._n ambros_n offi_n l_o 1_o c._n 23_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o find_v not_o in_o the_o answer_n answer_n scripture_n how_o can_v we_o use_v they_o and_o again_o 11._o again_o idem_fw-la in_o virgin_n instit_fw-la c._n 11._o i_o read_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o i_o read_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o second_o they_o who_o say_v he_o be_v the_o second_o let_v they_o show_v it_o by_o read_v s._n ambrose_n instruct_v churchman_n how_o they_o ought_v to_o 140._o reply_v p._n 140._o carry_v themselves_o in_o their_o conversation_n propound_v the_o question_n whether_o they_o may_v use_v such_o pleasant_a &_o merry_a jest_n in_o their_o speech_n as_o the_o philosopher_n do_v commend_v whereunto_o he_o answer_v negative_o in_o these_o word_n the_o thing_n which_o we_o find_v
contradict_v any_o of_o these_o for_o if_o we_o go_v about_o to_o reject_v such_o custom_n as_o be_v not_o deliver_v by_o writing_n account_v they_o to_o be_v of_o little_a force_n we_o shall_v unaware_o damnage_v the_o gospel_n very_o much_o and_o bring_v the_o preach_v thereof_o unto_o a_o bare_a name_n of_o word_n neither_o be_v we_o content_v with_o such_o thing_n only_o as_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o gospel_n do_v express_v but_o we_o say_v many_o thing_n both_o before_o consecration_n and_o after_o of_o great_a avayle_n for_o that_o mystery_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n without_o writing_n what_o a_o bullhead_n be_v this_o to_o confound_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d constitution_n and_o doctrine_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o same_o whereas_o they_o differ_v very_o much_o s._n basil_n in_o the_o subsequent_a word_n distinguish_v they_o say_v ibid._n say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d idem_fw-la ibid._n constitution_n be_v one_o thing_n doctrine_n be_v another_o thing_n constitution_n be_v the_o ritââ_n custom_n decree_n or_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n so_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v translate_v a_o 1._o a_o luc._n â_o 1._o dâcreâ_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 15â_n ãâã_d âphes_n â_o 15â_n ordinance_n doctrine_n be_v the_o point_n of_o salvation_n perpetual_a and_o not_o changeable_a as_o the_o ceremony_n be_v and_o in_o the_o very_a word_n allege_v s._n basil_n distinguish_v they_o for_o he_o say_v not_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v gospel_n but_o if_o we_o reject_v they_o and_o account_v they_o of_o no_o force_n we_o may_v damnage_v the_o gospel_n and_o bring_v preach_v to_o a_o bare_a name_n we_o shall_v soon_o see_v this_o if_o there_o be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a order_n what_o kind_n of_o prayer_n or_o preach_v or_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n will_v there_o be_v if_o every_o man_n may_v be_v his_o own_o carver_n in_o these_o thing_n sure_o there_o will_v be_v a_o babel_n of_o confusion_n quot_fw-la capita_fw-la tot_fw-la placita_fw-la the_o jesuite_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o cause_n corrupt_o translath_v s._n basil_n in_o this_o manner_n etc._n manner_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n the_o doctrine_n and_o institution_n which_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o church_n some_o of_o they_o we_o have_v out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n and_o some_o out_o of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n whereas_o s._n basil_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v translate_v the_o institution_n and_o doctrine_n which_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n these_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n we_o have_v out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n those_o that_o be_v the_o institution_n we_o have_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n basâl_a in_o this_o differ_v nothing_o from_o our_o doctrine_n that_o the_o unwritten_a thing_n which_o come_v by_o tradition_n be_v the_o rite_n ceremony_n or_o institution_n which_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n of_o which_o sort_n he_o reckon_v these_o signe_v with_o the_o cross_n pray_v towards_o the_o east_n stand_v in_o prayer_n between_o easter_n and_o pentecost_n thriâe_o dip_v of_o the_o party_n baptize_v a_o certain_a form_n of_o prayer_n both_o before_o and_o after_o consecration_n these_o we_o confess_v be_v not_o write_v but_o they_o all_o be_v ritual_a tradition_n and_o belong_v not_o to_o our_o controversy_n the_o doctrine_n of_o which_o we_o dispute_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n baâil_n to_o which_o we_o subscribe_v there_o be_v one_o thing_n in_o that_o of_o s._n baâil_n which_o he_o utter_v unadvised_o that_o both_o the_o institution_n and_o doctrine_n have_v equal_a force_n unto_o godliness_n but_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o s._n baâil_n be_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n in_o defence_n of_o these_o order_n of_o the_o church_n speak_v thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d but_o after_o be_v in_o more_o cool_a blood_n he_o speak_v like_o himself_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o have_v show_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v give_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n he_o show_v that_o those_o be_v not_o necessary_a thing_n say_v 1._o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n idem_fw-la in_o rââul_n contract_n can_v 1._o concern_v thâse_a thing_n which_o be_v give_v without_o writing_n the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v give_v ââ_o this_o rule_v all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a we_o deny_v not_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ordinance_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o expedient_a as_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a force_n unto_o godliness_n with_o the_o write_v doctrine_n this_o be_v deny_v not_o only_o by_o we_o but_o even_o by_o the_o wise_a papist_n themselves_o and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n many_o of_o the_o unwritten_a constitution_n of_o which_o basil_n speak_v be_v not_o observe_v as_o 3._o as_o durand_n the_o ritib._n eccl._n l._n 1._o cap._n 3._o pray_v stand_v to_o the_o east_n and_o baptis_n and_o catech_v rom._n de_fw-fr baptis_n the_o thrice_o dip_v of_o the_o party_n baptize_v this_o omission_n 7._o omission_n bellat_fw-la de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la non_fw-la script_n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o bellarââââ_n excuse_v by_o distinguish_v the_o observation_n of_o they_o from_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o they_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o our_o observation_n how_o can_v they_o be_v of_o equal_a force_n unto_o godliness_n at_o last_o s._n baâil_n conclude_v thus_o ibid._n thus_o idem_fw-la ibid._n the_o day_n will_v fail_v 144._o reply_v p._n 144._o i_o if_o i_o shall_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o number_v up_o all_o the_o unwritten_a mystery_n of_o the_o church_n i_o ommit_v the_o rest_n only_o i_o demand_v in_o what_o write_a word_n have_v we_o the_o very_a profession_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o belâeve_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n we_o have_v answer_v and_o for_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o profess_v this_o faith_n that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n be_v teach_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o jesuite_n in_o another_o 146._o another_o pag._n 146._o place_n as_o for_o example_n the_o creed_n the_o scripture_n declare_v plain_a enough_o unto_o who_o confession_n i_o may_v add_v that_o of_o cyrill_n 5â_n cyrill_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n cyril_n catech._n 5â_n the_o choice_n thing_n of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v knit_v together_o make_v up_o the_o form_n of_o our_o creed_n and_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n symbol_n augustine_n aug._n l._n 1._o ad_fw-la catechum_fw-la de_fw-fr symbol_n the_o word_n of_o the_o symbol_n be_v seatteâed_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o from_o they_o collect_v into_o one_o so_o that_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n s._n baââl_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n but_o that_o profession_n or_o manner_n of_o recite_v it_o which_o the_o church_n require_v of_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n as_o we_o require_v in_o confirmation_n or_o else_o the_o whole_a frame_n syntaxe_n and_o form_n of_o word_n as_o they_o be_v kâit_v together_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o this_o we_o confess_v be_v not_o write_v verbatim_o altogether_o in_o any_o one_o part_n of_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v take_v out_o of_o diverse_a part_n of_o scripture_n and_o collect_v into_o one_o form_n of_o word_n clement_n of_o alexandria_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o 144_o reply_v pag._n 144_o the_o roman_n c._n 1._o i_o deâire_v to_o see_v you_o that_o i_o may_v impart_v unto_o you_o some_o spiritual_a gift_n for_o your_o confirmation_n 5._o confirmation_n clem_n alex_n stro_n l._n 5._o such_o gift_n aâ_n these_o say_v clement_n can_v not_o be_v publish_v open_o by_o write_v be_v a_o tradition_n which_o he_o desire_v to_o deliver_v unto_o they_o be_v present_a and_o not_o by_o epistle_n 11._o what_o spiritual_a gift_n s._n paul_n mean_v he_o declare_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n 12._o verse_n rom._n 1._o 12._o that_o be_v that_o i_o may_v be_v comfort_v together_o with_o you_o by_o our_o mutual_a faith_n comfort_n be_v that_o spiritual_a gift_n which_o he_o desire_v to_o impart_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o receive_v from_o they_o and_o this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v so_o well_o by_o writing_n as_o by_o mutual_a speech_n and_o conference_n it_o be_v not_o to_o teach_v any_o unknown_a unwritten_a doctrine_n unto_o they_o for_o that_o he_o may_v have_v deliver_v unto_o phebe_n the_o bearer_n of_o his_o epistle_n and_o she_o unto_o they_o yea_o paul_n profess_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v
already_o 14._o already_o rom._n 15._o 14._o fill_v with_o all_o knowledge_n what_o paul_n desire_v to_o impart_v unto_o they_o he_o desire_v to_o receive_v the_o same_o from_o they_o but_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o paul_n desire_v to_o be_v teach_v any_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o they_o eusebius_n also_o tell_v we_o â_o we_o euseb_n â_o 1._o de_fw-fr demoâstr_n evang_v c._n â_o that_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n 14â_n reply_v pag._n 14â_n commend_v unto_o the_o faithful_a such_o thing_n as_o they_o learn_v of_o their_o master_n partly_o by_o writing_n and_o partly_o without_o writing_n and_o therefore_o ancyran_n therefore_o idem_fw-la coât_fw-la marâ_n episâ_n ancyran_n the_o church_n from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o a_o other_o confirm_v her_o doctrine_n by_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n 12._o i_o tell_v you_o that_o eusebius_n by_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v deliver_v without_o writing_n mean_v not_o sâch_a thing_n as_o be_v doctrinal_a for_o he_o commend_v 3._o commend_v ãâ¦ã_o in_o 1._o tiâ_n 3._o constaâtine_n his_o good_a admonition_n give_v to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a among_o which_o theodâret_n relate_v this_o for_o one_o 7._o one_o theodâr_n l._n 1._o cap._n 7._o consult_v only_o with_o the_o scripture_n which_o do_v full_o instruct_v ââ_o in_o such_o thing_n other_o thing_n such_o as_o be_v ritual_a may_v be_v commend_v without_o writing_n neither_o do_v eâsâbius_n say_v that_o such_o thing_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o faithful_a without_o write_v ibid._n write_v illis_fw-la autem_fw-la qui_fw-la animas_fw-la adhuc_fw-la affectibus_fw-la obnoxias_fw-la gerebant_fw-la curationisque_fw-la indigentes_fw-la tradidisse_fw-la quae_fw-la ijs_fw-la conâenire_fw-la aâbitrabantur_fw-la idque_fw-la partim_fw-la ãâã_d partim_fw-la sine_fw-la literis_fw-la euseb_n ibid._n but_o unto_o those_o who_o soul_n be_v as_o yet_o mislead_v by_o their_o affection_n and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o cure_v they_o deliver_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o judge_v fit_a for_o they_o partly_o by_o writing_n partly_o without_o writing_n now_o if_o they_o be_v deliver_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v not_o perfect_a but_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o storm_n of_o their_o affection_n how_o can_v they_o be_v unwritten_a tradition_n for_o according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n unwritten_a tradition_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o such_o great_a mystery_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o such_o as_o be_v unsound_a and_o waver_v but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v sound_a stay_v perfect_a and_o faithful_a it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o a_o diverse_a manner_n according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o their_o hearer_n sometime_o more_o accurate_o and_o sometime_o more_o plain_o sometime_o more_o brief_o and_o sometime_o more_o full_o but_o the_o same_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v still_o deliver_v unto_o all_o both_o by_o writing_n and_o without_o writing_n the_o jesuite_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o cause_n false_o translate_v that_o other_o testimony_n of_o eusebius_n thus_o it_o be_v to_o be_v english_v confirmaâ_n english_v ecclesia_fw-la ex_fw-la divinis_fw-la scripture_n testimony_n ex_fw-la non_fw-la scripta_fw-la traditione_n confirmaâ_n the_o church_n confirm_v the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n howsoever_o it_o be_v translate_v it_o make_v no_o more_o for_o unwritten_a tradition_n than_o it_o do_v for_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o heathen_a themselves_o because_o the_o church_n confirm_v her_o doctrine_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n and_o likewise_o of_o the_o heathen_a this_o inference_n be_v as_o sound_v s._n paul_n confirm_v his_o doctrine_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o heathen_a poet_n and_o so_o the_o church_n confirm_v her_o doctrine_n by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o heathen_n therefore_o those_o poet_n and_o those_o heathenish_a writing_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o write_a word_n this_o inference_n ãâ¦ã_o be_v as_o âound_v as_o this_o the_o church_n confirm_v the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n or_o the_o church_n confirm_v her_o doctrine_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n therefore_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v as_o sure_a as_o scripture_n and_o be_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o it_o the_o proof_n be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o thing_n prove_v in_o this_o present_a controversy_n as_o in_o all_o other_o we_o make_v use_v of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o other_o help_n yet_o we_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o day_n unto_o the_o scripture_n they_o must_v make_v the_o onset_n they_o be_v infallible_a and_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o final_a determination_n of_o all_o question_n of_o faith_n yet_o the_o field_n be_v fight_v and_o the_o enemy_n vanquish_v ex_fw-la superabundanti_fw-la we_o make_v use_v of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o other_o help_v rather_o ad_fw-la pompam_fw-la then_o ad_fw-la pugnam_fw-la for_o our_o great_a glory_n and_o your_o great_a confusion_n s._n epiphanius_n 69._o epiphanius_n epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 69._o the_o father_n be_v uncreate_v and_o unbegotten_a 145_o reply_v pag._n 145_o but_o where_o be_v this_o say_v write_v so_o the_o word_n coessential_a or_o consubstantial_a be_v not_o write_v and_o 75._o and_o idem_fw-la haeres_fw-la 75._o god_n have_v teach_v we_o both_o by_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o by_o tradition_n 13._o in_o the_o state_v of_o this_o question_n we_o allow_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o delivery_n of_o wholesome_a word_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o we_o dispute_v not_o against_o unwritten_a word_n but_o against_o unwritten_a doctrine_n and_o though_o these_o word_n unbegotten_a coessential_a etc._n etc._n be_v not_o write_v yet_o the_o doctrine_n signify_v by_o they_o be_v write_v in_o other_o word_n as_o we_o have_v 12._o have_v sect._n 4._o divis_n 12._o former_o declare_v this_o be_v a_o doctrine_n teach_v we_o both_o by_o holy_a scripture_n and_o by_o tradition_n by_o tradition_n that_o be_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n by_o which_o we_o confess_v god_n teach_v we_o and_o not_o by_o write_v only_o this_o only_a concern_v ââdum_fw-la tradendâ_n the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n but_o the_o question_n be_v de_fw-fr re_fw-mi tradiââ_fw-la of_o the_o matter_n deliver_v whether_o god_n by_o tradition_n have_v teach_v we_o any_o unwritten_a doctrine_n the_o jesuite_n play_v âack_o on_o both_o side_n now_o against_o he_o leave_v his_o assail_a we_o by_o the_o father_n and_o return_v again_o to_o answer_v the_o father_n object_v against_o he_o like_o a_o tire_a lade_n he_o desire_v to_o âhange_v his_o pace_n and_o yet_o be_v neither_o good_a at_o troth_n or_o amble_v the_o holy_a scripture_n answer_n answer_n say_v s._n luâan_n s._n cyril_n l._n 7._o cont_n luâan_n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o which_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o it_o wise_a and_o most_o approve_a and_o furnish_v with_o sufficient_a understanding_n and_o again_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o say_v by_o what_o mean_n shall_v we_o receive_v and_o account_v it_o among_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v true_a s._n cyrill_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n under_o the_o 145_o reply_v pag._n 145_o name_n of_o scripture_n comprehendâth_v always_o unwritten_a tradition_n 14._o sure_o the_o sea_n make_v his_o brain_n addle_n he_o go_v far_o to_o suck_v a_o bull_n and_o here_o be_v a_o bull_n indeed_o he_o may_v aswell_o sââ_n by_o a_o man_n be_v mean_v a_o bull_n or_o under_o a_o man_n be_v comprehend_v a_o bull_n as_o to_o say_v under_o scripture_n the_o faiber_n always_o comprehend_v unwritten_a tradition_n tradition_n be_v oft_o take_v for_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v never_o take_v for_o unwritten_a tradition_n they_o be_v as_o like_a as_o light_v and_o darkness_n this_o be_v as_o good_a nonsense_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o this_o say_v he_o appeareth_z by_z cyrils_n exhortarion_n heortast_n exhortarion_n cyril_n ho._n â_o heortast_n lay_v up_o in_o the_o inward_a closet_n of_o thy_o heart_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o certain_a treasure_n lay_v hold_v on_o such_o action_n as_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n call_v you_o this_o a_o evident_a proof_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a proof_n that_o your_o assertion_n be_v false_a see_v you_o can_v bring_v no_o better_o a_o proof_n for_o it_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o scripture_n nor_o of_o tradition_n nor_o of_o unwritten_a how_o then_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o under_o scripture_n cyrill_n comprehend_v unwritten_a tradition_n i_o know_v the_o word_n tradition_n may_v be_v take_v for_o scripture_n but_o under_o scripture_n to_o comprehend_v unwritten_a tradition_n be_v as_o usual_a with_o the_o father_n as_o truth_n be_v
upon_o the_o christian_n yourselves_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o thing_n and_o yet_o lay_v they_o to_o our_o charge_n this_o domineer_a be_v in_o the_o first_o &_o chief_a place_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n challenge_v this_o priâacie_n &_o principality_n above_o all_o place_n the_o judgement_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n namely_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n must_v yâeld_v to_o her_o opinion_n this_o deform_a church_n not_o unlike_o a_o toadstool_n all_o head_n no_o body_n for_o the_o 23._o the_o hervaeâ_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la papâ_n c._n 23._o pope_n say_v harvie_n virtual_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v so_o swell_v up_o with_o arrogancy_n that_o whatsoever_o interpretation_n he_o give_v of_o scripture_n though_o it_o cross_v the_o sense_n which_o the_o father_n give_v yet_o it_o must_v be_v believe_v if_o we_o will_v believe_v 7._o believe_v cusan_a epist_n 7._o cusanus_fw-la and_o whosoever_o be_v absolve_v by_o the_o pope_n from_o god_n law_n he_o be_v safe_a enough_o with_o god_n if_o we_o will_v credit_n â_o credit_n bodin_n de_fw-fr rep._n â_o 1._o c._n â_o bodin_n the_o toul_n of_o bell_n the_o sight_n of_o relic_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n mass_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v some_o of_o the_o rot_a ware_n sell_v by_o these_o soule-marchant_n be_v not_o this_o to_o sell_v the_o invention_n of_o upstart_n and_o from_o your_o charity_n good_a lord_n deliver_v we_o thus_o gentle_a reader_n thou_o have_v hear_v the_o verdict_n of_o the_o jury_n the_o senseless_a exception_n which_o the_o jesuite_n have_v take_v against_o they_o all_o that_o he_o can_v say_v for_o himself_o answer_v and_o confute_v &_o now_o take_v upon_o thou_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n consider_v consult_v &_o give_v thy_o sentence_n as_o god_n shall_v direct_v thou_o sect_n vii_o of_o the_o original_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n 1._o the_o contrariety_n or_o diversity_n of_o any_o doctrine_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a as_o 12._o as_o tertul._n prescript_n advers._fw-la haereâ_n c._n 12._o tertuslian_n hold_v for_o the_o confutation_n of_o it_o we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n do_v either_o cross_a the_o verity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o be_v contra_fw-la legem_fw-la or_o else_o they_o cross_v the_o perfection_n of_o they_o and_o so_o be_v prater_fw-la legem_fw-la to_o find_v out_o the_o original_n of_o all_o heresy_n be_v as_o difficult_a a_o thing_n as_o to_o find_v out_o the_o head_n of_o nilus_n hic_fw-la labour_n hoc_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la and_o yet_o for_o the_o more_o full_a discovery_n of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o doctrine_n unto_o your_o fatherhood_n the_o original_n of_o it_o be_v thus_o find_v out_o if_o now_o be_v be_v demand_v in_o what_o pope_n day_n the_o contrary_a doctrine_n be_v bring_v in_o among_o christian_n i_o answer_v that_o if_o s._n peter_n be_v ever_o pope_n in_o his_o day_n it_o be_v that_o some_o seducer_n first_o labour_v to_o bring_v in_o will_n worship_n into_o the_o church_n against_o who_o s._n paul_n oppose_v himself_o coloss_n 2._o count_v it_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o condemn_v all_o such_o invention_n that_o they_o be_v the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n you_o tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n for_o the_o tradition_n which_o we_o 15â_n reply_v pag._n 15â_n âaintâine_v be_v not_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n but_o deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n 2._o this_o be_v a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n that_o you_o defend_v no_o tradition_n but_o such_o as_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o the_o church_n will_v you_o be_v content_a to_o renounce_v all_o your_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n &_o only_o to_o cleave_v unto_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o scripture_n tell_v tale_n of_o your_o tradition_n and_o we_o have_v discover_v they_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o aesopes_n fable_n or_o tale_n of_o robin_n hood_n the_o apostle_n word_n be_v these_o â_o these_o coloss_n 2._o â_o beware_v lest_o any_o man_n deceive_v 15â_n reply_v p._n 15â_n you_o by_o philosophy_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n according_a to_o the_o element_n of_o this_o world_n and_o not_o according_a unto_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n he_o treat_v âot_n of_o any_o tradition_n which_o âe_v different_a from_o the_o scripture_n but_o of_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o he_o term_v the_o tradition_n of_o man_n because_o it_o be_v now_o expire_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n by_o philosophic_a he_o do_v not_o meanâ_n the_o philosophical_a science_n of_o the_o school_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o such_o as_o be_v account_v sage_n and_o wise_a among_o the_o hebrew_n the_o element_n be_v not_o the_o four_o element_n but_o the_o weak_a element_n of_o the_o jewish_a religion_n he_o speak_v this_o say_v s._n 10._o s._n hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la algas_n q._n 10._o hiernme_n against_o certain_a of_o the_o jew_n who_o desire_v to_o bring_v in_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o again_o he_o swell_v with_o pride_n who_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v in_o jewish_a tradition_n and_o thus_o he_o present_v uâ_n with_o a_o mass_n of_o jewish_a tradition_n here_o be_v a_o great_a cry_n but_o little_a wool_n much_o a_o do_v to_o little_a pââpose_n about_o philosophy_n and_o the_o four_o â_o element_n with_o this_o foolosopher_n the_o sum_n of_o all_o be_v this_o that_o here_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n i_o confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n seek_v to_o wean_v the_o colossian_n from_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o to_o win_v they_o unto_o christ_n in_o present_v you_o with_o a_o mess_n of_o jewish_a tradition_n we_o serve_v you_o with_o your_o own_o souse_n for_o this_o mess_n of_o jewish_a ceremony_n be_v serve_v up_o and_o observe_v in_o your_o church_n you_o have_v dig_v moseâ_n out_o of_o his_o grave_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o your_o religion_n as_o a_o late_a 567._o late_a reynolds_n against_o hart._n pag._n 567._o writer_n well_o observe_v consist_v in_o jewish_a ceremony_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a thing_n against_o which_o the_o apostle_n dispute_v bellarmine_n deny_v your_o exposition_n say_v 10._o say_v bellar._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 10._o in_o those_o place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o condemn_v tradition_n they_o be_v such_o tradition_n aâ_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o write_a word_n the_o apostle_n hore_n condemn_v tradition_n and_o you_o say_v they_o be_v not_o such_o as_o be_v different_a from_o the_o scripture_n bellarmine_n give_v his_o reason_n because_o they_o be_v never_o call_v tradition_n of_o moses_n or_o of_o the_o prophet_n but_o tradition_n of_o man_n you_o âee_n they_o be_v call_v tradition_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o say_v they_o be_v so_o call_v because_o the_o ceremony_n be_v now_o expire_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n bellarminâ_n and_o this_o jesuit_n do_v both_o cite_v this_o place_n of_o hiâromâ_n the_o one_o to_o prove_v that_o those_o tradition_n be_v contrary_a the_o other_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o differ_v not_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o thus_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o jesuâte_n differ_v in_o their_o opinion_n and_o agree_v like_o harp_n and_o harrow_n i_o approve_v of_o bellarminâs_n reason_n tradition_n of_o man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v tradition_n of_o god_n and_o though_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v call_v a_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o the_o jesuite_n 159._o jesuite_n pag._n 159._o observe_v out_o of_o our_o english_a translation_n thââ_n ãâã_d use_v the_o word_n tradition_n only_o where_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o certain_a tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n partly_o frivolous_a partly_o repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n then_o the_o tradition_n here_o speak_v of_o must_v needs_o be_v not_o only_o different_a but_o also_o repagââââ_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o in_o this_o place_n all_o our_o traâllations_n have_v the_o word_n tradition_n that_o the_o apostle_n here_o speak_v of_o tradition_n different_a from_o the_o scripture_n this_o do_v evident_o appear_v by_o the_o particular_a tradition_n which_o he_o condemn_v as_o 19_o as_o verse_n 18._o 19_o worship_v of_o angel_n and_o touch_v not_o tuste_v not_o handle_v not_o these_o be_v popish_a tradition_n they_o worship_v angel_n in_o pray_v to_o they_o and_o some_o of_o they_o must_v not_o touch_v fine_a liââen_o not_o tâste_a flesh_n not_o handle_v money_n these_o be_v tradition_n of_o man_n not_o different_a from_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o you_o have_v not_o stint_v we_o to_o show_v in_o what_o pope_n day_n unwritten_a tradition_n be_v bring_v in_o
any_o secret_a doctrine_n conceal_v from_o the_o little_a one_o that_o believe_v which_o be_v in_o secret_a reveal_v to_o the_o great_a one_o but_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v propound_v before_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o now_o his_o tongue_n be_v clipâ_n and_o these_o word_n in_o the_o late_a edition_n because_o they_o cross_v they_o be_v cross_v out_o where_o then_o be_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n for_o your_o doctrine_n this_o be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n but_o of_o the_o heretic_n if_o you_o will_v believe_v your_o own_o salmâron_n 15._o salmâron_n exit_fw-la grege_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la nostri_fw-la seculi_fw-la quidam_fw-la est_fw-la insignis_fw-la castellio_n dictus_fw-la qui_fw-la docet_fw-la apostolum_n reconditio_fw-la they_o aliquam_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la habu_fw-la isse_fw-la quam_fw-la scriptis_fw-la non_fw-la commendaverit_fw-la sed_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la perfectis_fw-la hominibus_fw-la eam_fw-la tradidisse_fw-la salmer_n in_o 2._o tim._n 3._o tom._n 15._o there_o be_v a_o notable_a heretic_n of_o late_a day_n call_v castellio_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o more_o secret_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n which_o he_o will_v not_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n by_o writing_n but_o deliver_v it_o to_o certain_a perfect_a man_n if_o this_o be_v heresy_n in_o he_o than_o the_o same_o be_v heresy_n in_o you_o so_o that_o he_o may_v well_o shake_v hand_n with_o you_o and_o you_o with_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n this_o doctrine_n be_v likewise_o build_v upon_o most_o false_a proposition_n 1._o that_o he_o great_a mystery_n be_v reserve_v for_o tradition_n and_o the_o least_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o what_o greaâer_n mystery_n be_v there_o then_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o wonderful_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n christ_n be_v declare_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o 16._o a_o 1._o tim._n â_o 16._o great_a mystery_n so_o be_v the_o mystical_a union_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n a_o 32._o a_o âphes_n 5._o 32._o great_a mystery_n all_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v but_o trifle_n unto_o these_o 2._o that_o the_o dignity_n of_o those_o mystery_n require_v silence_n lest_o too_o much_o knowledge_n shall_v bring_v thâm_n into_o contempt_n trutâ_n never_o blush_v but_o when_o it_o be_v conceal_v say_v valentinian_n say_v nihil_fw-la veritas_fw-la crubescit_fw-la nisi_fw-la abscondi_fw-la tert._n cont._n valentinian_n tertulliaâ_n and_o ignorance_n not_o knowledge_n cause_v pride_n and_o contempt_n s._n paul_n will_v not_o have_v the_o roman_n ignorant_a of_o a_o great_a mystery_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v 25._o be_v rom._n 11._o 25._o arrogant_a what_o make_v the_o athenians_n speak_v base_o of_o s._n 17._o s._n act._n 17._o paul_n and_o of_o his_o doctrine_n but_o only_o their_o ignorance_n when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 11._o ãâã_d act._n 2._o 11._o the_o wonderful_a thing_n of_o god_n ignorance_n make_v their_o hearer_n flout_v they_o for_o it_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n word_n be_v not_o like_o juggle_a trick_n which_o be_v oft_o see_v and_o discover_v become_v contemptible_a but_o rather_o like_o the_o sun_n every_o day_n see_v and_o yet_o desire_v â_o desire_v aug._n epist_n â_o such_o be_v the_o depth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n say_v s._n augustine_n that_o if_o i_o do_v study_v nothing_o but_o it_o all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n yet_o i_o may_v still_o learn_v more_o out_o of_o it_o how_o then_o can_v the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o thing_n cause_n contempt_n of_o which_o the_o ripe_a understanding_n can_v never_o know_v enough_o and_o if_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v teach_v to_o the_o people_n which_o in_o fact_n through_o their_o own_o foolishness_n they_o do_v sometime_o contemn_v thân_o sure_o the_o apostle_n will_v never_o have_v write_v such_o mystery_n as_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n neither_o will_v they_o have_v preach_v christ_n crucify_v both_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o the_o gentile_n 2d_o gentile_n 1._o cor._n 1._o 2d_o to_o the_o lewes_z a_o stumble_a block_n and_o to_o the_o grecians_n foolishness_n and_o as_o these_o position_n be_v false_a so_o their_o practice_n be_v contrary_a to_o their_o own_o ground_n for_o if_o those_o great_a mystery_n be_v not_o open_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o âââ_o read_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o be_v lock_v up_o under_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o only_o the_o thing_n of_o less_o dignity_n be_v open_v in_o the_o scripture_n why_o then_o be_v the_o common_a people_n debar_v from_o read_v the_o scripture_n &_o not_o from_o unwritten_a tradition_n why_o do_v you_o teach_v these_o great_a mystery_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n unto_o they_o see_v they_o may_v be_v soon_o bring_v into_o contempt_n by_o hear_v then_o by_o read_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o all_o can_v read_v but_o all_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v yea_o what_o authority_n have_v you_o to_o write_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n think_v not_o âit_a to_o be_v write_v 1â_n write_v diony_n halicarn_n l._n 1â_n those_o thing_n say_v dâânysiuâ_n which_o all_o may_v nââ_n see_v i_o think_v all_o âââuld_v not_o hear_v they_o neither_o ought_v they_o to_o be_v write_v wherefore_o that_o hereafter_o your_o practice_n may_v not_o be_v contrary_a to_o your_o position_n take_v away_o your_o missal_n rational_n ritual_n pontifical_n breviaries_n legend_n and_o the_o like_a from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o common_a people_n see_v in_o these_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n which_o by_o too_o much_o familiarity_n may_v be_v contemn_v &_o allow_v the_o scripture_n unto_o the_o common_a people_n see_v the_o apostle_n will_v not_o open_v these_o mystery_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v unto_o the_o whole_a world_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v contemn_v to_o shift_v his_o neck_n out_o of_o the_o collar_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v coupple_v with_o those_o heretic_n he_o use_v this_o as_o a_o other_o shift_n mu_o we_o shake_v hand_n with_o heretic_n forsooth_o if_o we_o 155._o reply_v p._n 155._o do_v but_o once_o touch_v the_o same_o text_n which_o they_o have_v produce_v he_o learn_v his_o manner_n forsooth_o but_o he_o have_v lose_v his_o wââs_n here_o be_v a_o witless_a demand_n we_o know_v the_o devil_n use_v 6._o use_v mat._n 4._o 6._o scripture_n and_o yet_o we_o lawful_o use_v the_o same_o text_n he_o say_v to_o our_o saviour_n 29._o saviour_n mat._n 8._o 29._o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o and_o yet_o our_o saviour_n use_v the_o same_o word_n to_o his_o mother_n 4._o mother_n joh._n 2._o 4._o what_o have_v â_o to_o do_v with_o thââ_n heretic_n will_v range_v through_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o must_v we_o but_o we_o say_v you_o may_v well_o shake_v hand_n with_o those_o heretic_n when_o you_o make_v use_v of_o the_o same_o text_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n for_o which_o they_o be_v condemn_v the_o jesuite_n deny_v the_o fact_n those_o heretic_n do_v reject_v such_o tradition_n aâ_n the_o catholic_a church_n do_v then_o maintain_v and_o they_o bring_v in_o such_o tradition_n as_o they_o of_o themselves_o find_v out_o teach_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o like_a in_o this_o likewise_o you_o may_v be_v parallel_v with_o those_o heretic_n for_o reâecting_v such_o write_a tradition_n as_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v then_o maintain_v as_o the_o give_v of_o the_o cup_n the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o like_a and_o also_o for_o bring_v in_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o your_o own_o invention_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v father_v on_o the_o apostle_n by_o you_o and_o though_o in_o the_o particular_a haresy_n defend_v by_o those_o heretic_n you_o may_v differ_v from_o they_o yet_o in_o the_o general_a tenant_n you_o may_v well_o shake_v hand_n together_o as_o long_o as_o with_o those_o heretic_n you_o defend_v the_o dignity_n of_o many_o mystery_n to_o be_v such_o that_o it_o be_v unmeet_a they_o shall_v be_v open_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o more_o secret_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o will_v not_o lay_v down_o in_o their_o writing_n but_o deliver_v it_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n unto_o perfect_a man_n that_o so_o under_o the_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n you_o may_v say_v what_o you_o will_v as_o against_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o 10000_o place_n at_o once_o and_o yet_o this_o pillar_n of_o popery_n shall_v uphold_v it_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o you_o teach_v the_o jesuite_n have_v enter_v his_o name_n in_o catalogo_fw-la hâreticorum_fw-la he_o take_v much_o pain_n to_o little_a purpose_n to_o find_v out_o our_o name_n therein_o what_o can_v you_o say_v for_o yourself_o when_o you_o 164._o reply_v
this_o our_o adversary_n enlarge_v unto_o all_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o in_o that_o of_o s._n hierome_n which_o the_o jesuite_n add_v in_o the_o margin_n that_o god_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n we_o believe_v because_o we_o read_v it_o that_o mary_n do_v marry_v after_o she_o be_v deliver_v we_o believe_v not_o because_o we_o read_v it_o not_o 11._o the_o father_n provoke_v their_o adversary_n unto_o scripture_n only_o not_o only_o in_o doubtful_a question_n not_o determine_v but_o likewise_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n determine_v by_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a determine_v this_o point_n that_o the_o son_n be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o about_o a_o 100_o year_n after_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v against_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n about_o the_o same_o point_n provoke_v 14_o provoke_v august_n count_v maxim_n l._n 3._o c._n 14_o he_o unto_o scripture_n only_o the_o iesuit_n instance_n of_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n can_v agree_v with_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n if_o it_o be_v a_o question_n not_o determine_v in_o the_o church_n when_o s._n hierome_n write_v against_o helvidius_n why_o then_o do_v the_o jesuite_n insert_v it_o into_o his_o 126._o his_o ag_n 126._o catalogue_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o as_o julius_n rugerius_fw-la once_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n protonotary_n observe_v canoniâis_n observe_v ill_n ruger_n de_fw-fr lib._n canoniâis_n a_o tradition_n be_v of_o no_o force_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v believe_v even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 6._o when_o the_o father_n cry_v out_o upon_o the_o abominable_a imposture_n 169._o reply_v p._n 169._o of_o the_o heretic_n who_o âathered_v upon_o the_o apostle_n execrable_a tradition_n our_o adversary_n make_v use_v of_o this_o against_o such_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a tradition_n as_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o throughout_o all_o nation_n have_v evermore_o observe_v 12._o we_o admit_v all_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a tradition_n and_o yield_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n if_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n the_o tradition_n of_o that_o church_n be_v as_o execrable_a and_o abominable_a as_o those_o tradition_n which_o be_v invent_v by_o those_o heretic_n and_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n as_o the_o father_n do_v to_o cry_v ouâ_n against_o such_o tradition_n these_o be_v the_o fraudulent_a invention_n by_o which_o these_o tradition-monger_n seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o verdict_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v against_o unwritten_a doctrine_n who_o fraud_n and_o craftiness_n do_v âlike_o wise_a appear_v in_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o as_o we_o have_v discover_v in_o the_o state_v of_o this_o question_n wheresoever_o the_o father_n use_v the_o word_n tradition_n mean_v thereby_o eiâher_o the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n or_o the_o matter_n deliver_v either_o ritual_a tradition_n unwritten_a or_o doctrinal_a tradition_n write_v all_o those_o place_n without_o any_o respect_n to_o thâ_n sense_n most_o senseless_o and_o deceitful_o they_o produce_v for_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n when_o the_o father_n use_v the_o word_n tradition_n for_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o write_a word_n in_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o for_o their_o delivery_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o the_o word_n by_o preach_v or_o by_o practice_n or_o for_o the_o church_n delivery_n of_o the_o write_a word_n or_o of_o write_a doctrine_n either_o express_o write_v or_o by_o consequence_n deduce_v or_o deliver_v in_o a_o unwritten_a form_n of_o word_n or_o for_o the_o succession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n or_o for_o unwritten_a rite_n and_o ordinance_n use_v by_o the_o church_n all_o such_o place_n they_o allege_v against_o we_o for_o their_o papistical_a tradition_n we_o confess_v that_o which_o follow_v in_o his_o reply_n that_o 170._o reply_v pag._n 170._o the_o condition_n of_o be_v write_v or_o not_o write_v belong_v nothing_o at_o all_o unto_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o precept_n but_o only_o unto_o the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n and_o therefore_o if_o once_o we_o be_v assure_v it_o be_v deliver_v we_o must_v not_o doubt_v of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o apostle_n do_v deliver_v such_o thing_n or_o no_o prove_v this_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v deliver_v such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n &_o that_o your_o unwritten_a doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o and_o we_o will_v make_v no_o doubt_n of_o they_o to_o prove_v this_o the_o jesuite_n propound_v three_o rule_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v certain_o assure_v of_o this_o 1._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-la 2._o by_o the_o daily_a and_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o by_o the_o write_a attestation_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o holy_a doctor_n his_o 1._o rule_n be_v thus_o square_v see_v our_o adversary_n have_v 170_o reply_v pag._n 170_o no_o other_o warrant_n for_o the_o write_a word_n but_o the_o continual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o age_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n for_o the_o unwritten_a word_n why_o do_v they_o not_o embrace_v the_o same_o 13._o if_o we_o have_v as_o good_a authority_n for_o the_o one_o as_o we_o have_v for_o the_o other_o we_o will_v embrace_v it_o for_o the_o write_a word_n we_o have_v more_o sure_a ground_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v 16_o have_v sect._n 4._o diu._n 16_o show_v but_o for_o unwritten_a tradition_n we_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o continual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n throroughout_v all_o age_n produce_v if_o you_o can_v the_o continual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o age_n for_o adore_v of_o image_n for_o deny_v the_o cup_n and_o the_o scripture_n unto_o the_o common_a people_n and_o marriage_n unto_o priest_n to_o prove_v unwritten_a tradition_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la for_o they_o account_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n a_o unwritten_a tradition_n this_o be_v to_o prove_v obscurum_fw-la per_fw-la obscurius_fw-la because_o it_o be_v a_o most_o difficult_a thing_n to_o find_v out_o the_o continual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n through_o all_o age_n howsoever_o we_o put_v it_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o church_n exceptis_fw-la semper_fw-la excipiendis_fw-la 1._o that_o it_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o true_o catholic_a church_n not_o of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n who_o fame_n be_v crack_v and_o âhe_n be_v âmficti_fw-la praviâ_n tenax_fw-la the_o case_n be_v she_o own_o and_o she_o must_v not_o be_v a_o witness_n in_o she_o own_o cause_n 9_o cause_n aug_n epist_n 9_o if_o one_o false_a thing_n be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n say_v s._n augustine_n what_o authority_n can_v there_o be_v in_o they_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v at_o the_o least_o one_o false_a tradition_n which_o be_v not_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o cup_n and_o then_o what_o authority_n can_v there_o be_v in_o her_o testimony_n 2._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v believe_v the_o jesuite_n may_v spare_v his_o labour_n in_o prove_v it_o but_o it_o can_v beget_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d full_a assurance_n which_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o that_o i_o may_v easy_o answer_v his_o question_n what_o deposition_n of_o witness_n i_o pray_v 170._o reply_v p._n 170._o you_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a and_o authentical_a then_o though_o voice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n why_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o more_o âure_a word_n holy_a man_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n and_o their_o affirmation_n make_v a_o thing_n probable_a but_o the_o scripture_n be_v infallible_a so_o certain_a as_o non_fw-la potest_fw-la âubesse_fw-la falsam_fw-la the_o scripture_n affirmation_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a demonstration_n and_o now_o have_v make_v our_o exception_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o continual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o uniform_a consent_n and_o agreement_n of_o six_o or_o seven_o 170._o reply_v p._n 170._o thousand_o chair_n and_o episcopal_a succession_n derive_v without_o any_o interruption_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n and_o of_o many_o million_o of_o subordinate_a church_n through_o the_o which_o as_o through_o so_o many_o conduit_n pipe_n ordain_v assist_v and_o authorize_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o this_o effect_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v with_o a_o great_a uniformity_n sliden_fw-mi and_o ââowen_v through_o all_o age_n unto_o we_o this_o be_v not_o the_o voâce_n of_o jacob_n but_o
and_o the_o cup_n unto_o the_o common_a people_n in_o which_o although_o you_o can_v gain_v the_o attestation_n of_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o make_v those_o new_a invention_n to_o mount_v up_o against_o the_o current_n of_o antiquity_n yet_o we_o know_v &_o can_v discover_v your_o sluttish_a trick_n in_o chap_a &_o change_v in_o wrest_v &_o wring_v in_o boast_v &_o brag_v of_o the_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n and_o sure_o whatsoever_o you_o say_v concern_v the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v you_o any_o hope_n of_o attain_v good_a success_n as_o you_o have_v father_v false_a tradition_n on_o the_o apostle_n so_o you_o will_v not_o spare_v to_o invent_v false_a scripture_n under_o the_o name_n of_o canonical_a author_n we_o know_v your_o good_a will_n by_o add_v apocryphal_a book_n unto_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o by_o equalize_v papal_a decree_n and_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n with_o the_o write_a word_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a a_o thing_n for_o you_o to_o bring_v in_o counterfeit_a scripture_n as_o counterfeit_a tradition_n because_o the_o scripture_n have_v more_o help_n to_o hinder_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o than_o tradition_n have_v 1._o the_o scripture_n have_v god_n providence_n to_o preserve_v it_o from_o addition_n aswell_o as_o from_o diminution_n but_o unwritten_a tradition_n want_v god_n providence_n to_o preserve_v they_o either_o from_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v those_o five_o book_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n write_v by_o egesippus_fw-la which_o you_o allege_v against_o we_o as_o those_o be_v lose_v so_o we_o may_v find_v many_o volume_n of_o false_a tradition_n 2._o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o none_o can_v add_v unto_o it_o but_o it_o will_v be_v present_o discover_v it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o unwritten_a tradition_n the_o pope_n himself_o can_v or_o will_v not_o lay_v down_o the_o certain_a definite_a number_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o say_v these_o &_o no_o more_o we_o hold_v as_o unwritten_a tradition_n i_o desire_v the_o jesuit_n to_o do_v one_o thing_n nay_o i_o hold_v out_o the_o flag_n of_o desiance_n and_o avouch_v it_o that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o to_o lay_v down_o the_o definite_a number_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n if_o he_o ever_o reply_v again_o let_v he_o not_o forget_v this_o challenge_n but_o i_o know_v he_o dare_v not_o for_o his_o âares_n to_o do_v it_o because_o this_o be_v the_o only_a shift_n they_o have_v to_o colour_v their_o new_a invention_n it_o be_v a_o tradition_n so_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o addition_n unto_o tradition_n and_o yet_o by_o the_o number_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v discover_v because_o the_o number_n be_v not_o yet_o nor_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v discover_v 3._o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o thing_n itself_o extant_a in_o faât_n always_o visible_a and_o not_o trust_v to_o the_o bare_a memory_n of_o man_n or_o to_o the_o attestation_n of_o other_o so_o that_o if_o any_o add_v unto_o it_o it_o will_v testify_v of_o itself_o and_o for_o itself_o but_o unwritten_a tradition_n take_v they_o at_o the_o best_a hand_n as_o they_o come_v from_o their_o first_o author_n ãâã_d thing_n extant_a in_o fact_n nor_o always_o visible_a but_o speak_v the_o best_a of_o they_o trust_v unto_o the_o bare_a memory_n of_o other_o so_o that_o other_o must_v testify_v for_o they_o they_o can_v testify_v for_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v more_o subject_n to_o addition_n even_o by_o those_o that_o testify_v for_o they_o and_o thus_o we_o have_v discover_v his_o proof_n to_o be_v false_a or_o impertinent_a and_o his_o three_o rule_n to_o be_v foolish_a or_o impossible_a that_o of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o of_o basil_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o ganger_n be_v 2_o be_v paul_n to_o thes_n sect._n 3_o divis_n 1._o basil_n sect_n 6._o divis_n 10._o chrysost_n sect_n 3_o divis_n 2._o conc_fw-fr gang._n sect_n 9_o divis_n 2_o already_o answer_v and_o now_o there_o remain_v only_o the_o curse_n thunder_v forth_o by_o that_o curse_a conventicle_n of_o nice_a common_o call_v the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a 7._o nice_a conc_fw-fr nic._n 2._o act._n 7._o if_o any_o man_n contemn_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v authorise_v either_o by_o writing_n or_o by_o custom_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v 17._o we_o be_v not_o nice_a to_o deny_v this_o conventicle_n of_o nice_a 172_o reply_v pag._n 172_o see_v it_o be_v call_v by_o a_o insolent_a woman_n irene_n domineer_a over_o her_o husband_n be_v compact_v of_o a_o sort_n of_o idolater_n and_o condemn_v by_o a_o better_a histos_n better_a council_n francos_fw-la iuxta_fw-la maenum_fw-la a_o 794._o walafrid_n stra._n &_o ado_n viennen_n in_o histos_n council_n this_o causeless_a 2._o causeless_a prov._n 26._o 2._o curse_n we_o fear_v not_o it_o shall_v not_o come_v upon_o we_o but_o rather_o like_o noah_n dove_n it_o shall_v return_v from_o whence_o it_o come_v we_o fear_v not_o balaams_n curse_n though_o he_o do_v vent_v they_o with_o bell_n book_n and_o candle_n for_o though_o they_o curse_v yet_o the_o 28._o the_o psal_n 109_o 28._o lord_n will_v bless_v but_o let_v all_o tradition-monger_n fear_v that_o dreadful_a curse_n which_o the_o lord_n pronounce_v against_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v teach_v prater_n or_o contra_fw-la otherwise_o or_o contrary_a wise_a than_o the_o scripture_n expound_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o you_o will_v all_o such_o be_v beside_o the_o way_n or_o in_o a_o contrary_a way_n let_v all_o such_o i_o say_v fear_v that_o curse_n write_v by_o s._n paul_n 8._o paul_n gal._n 1._o 8._o if_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v otherwise_o unto_o you_o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v to_o avoid_v this_o curse_n in_o say_v s._n paul_n speak_v not_o of_o what_o be_v write_v but_o of_o what_o be_v preach_v s._n augustine_n forewarn_v you_o thus_o 6._o thus_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la siâe_fw-fr d_o châiââo_n sive_fw-la de_fw-la cius_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-fr quââun_fw-fr qâe_fw-fr aâiââe_fw-fr qâae_fw-la pertinet_fw-la ad_fw-la si_fw-la they_fw-mi vitamque_fw-la nostram_fw-la ân_fw-la dâcâm_fw-la si_fw-la nos_fw-la sed_fw-la quâd_n pau_n luâ_n ãâã_d it_o â_o aâgâus_fw-la de_fw-fr câ_n lâ_n vob_v saânun_v âiaveâit_n prae_fw-la âârqua_fw-la ââ_o quoth_v in_o scripture_n legalibus_fw-la eâangelicis_fw-la accâpi_fw-la this_o anâ_n themâ_n sit_v aug_n lib_n 3._o count_v litter_n pe_n till_o c._n 6._o if_o any_o one_o concern_v christ_n or_o his_o church_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n which_o belonge_v unto_o faith_n and_o life_n i_o will_v not_o say_v if_o we_o but_o as_o paul_n add_v if_o a_o angel_n froâ_n heaven_n preach_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o then_o what_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o who_o can_v declare_v what_o curse_n this_o iâ_n for_o though_o there_o be_v no_o unwritten_a doctrine_n yet_o there_o be_v unwritten_a 6_o unwritten_a deut_n 2d_o 6_o curse_n iâ_n the_o jesuite_n have_v any_o mind_n to_o reply_v again_o let_v he_o begin_v when_o he_o will_v he_o shall_v be_v answer_v for_o this_o time_n the_o combat_n be_v end_v and_o the_o day_n be_v we_o the_o ark_n stand_v and_o dagon_n be_v fall_v the_o great_a fort_n of_o popery_n be_v batter_v down_o and_o all_o popery_n totter_v at_o the_o âall_n of_o it_o in_o this_o adversary_n we_o have_v discover_v many_o shift_n but_o little_a learning_n a_o spiteful_a heart_n a_o bââter_a tongue_n and_o a_o brazen_a fâce_n be_v his_o best_a argument_n his_o whole_a discourse_n like_o a_o airy_a meteor_n be_v compose_v of_o a_o deal_n of_o matter_n imperfect_o mix_v together_o be_v quite_o vanish_v as_o his_o proof_n be_v weak_a âo_o his_o position_n be_v wicked_a and_o therefore_o let_v nothing_o draw_v thou_o from_o scripture_n to_o follow_v after_o other_o doctrine_n but_o let_v that_o be_v the_o lyain_n lapis_fw-la the_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n and_o then_o i_o will_v say_v of_o unwritten_a tradition_n that_o which_o saul_n say_v to_o jonathan_n concern_v his_o kingdom_n 31._o kingdom_n 1._o sam._n 20_o 31._o as_o long_o as_o the_o son_n of_o ishaâ_n live_v thou_o shall_v not_o be_v establish_v oâ_n thy_o kingdom_n fault_n to_o be_v amend_v in_o the_o title_n page_n line_n 17._o for_o be_v read_v be_v in_o the_o epistle_n for_o zeââcrates_n reed_n xenocraâes_v pag._n 2._o lin_v 11._o for_o fibolist_n read_v fikher_o p._n 5._o lin_v 27_o for_o that_o read_v thus_o p._n 6._o l._n 2._o for_o jesuite_n read_v jesuite_n p._n 9_o l._n 19_o for_o speak_v read_v speak_v p._n 11_o l._n 10._o for_o as_o it_o read_v as_o if_o it_o p._n 16._o l._n 18._o for_o tradition_n read_v tradition_n p._n 1â_n l._n 32_o for_o the_o read_v this_o p._n 32_o l._n 4._o for_o leâsâus_n read_v lenseâs_n p._n 41._o l._n 35._o for_o they_o read_v he_o p._n 54._o l._n 36._o for_o handle_v read_v fold_v p._n 84._o l._n 8._o for_o to_o to_o read_v to_o p._n â6_n l._n 6._o for_o wrestle_a reed_n wrest_v p_o 87_o l_o 24._o for_o wrestle_v wrestle_v read_v wrest_v wrest_v p._n 135._o l._n â_o for_o not_o read_v and_z p._n 138._o l._n 21._o for_o call_n read_v call_v they_o p_o 160._o l._n 3._o for_o our_o read_v your_o p._n 171_o l._n 12._o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d read_v if_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d p._n â69_n l_o 36._o for_n and_o the_o read_v and_o to_o this_o end_n the._n in_o the_o margin_n p._n 6_o for_o 129_o read_v 120._o p._n 9_o for_o chrysost_n read_v chrysol_n p_o 36._o for_o sap_n read_v sip_v p._n 57_o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d read_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d p._n 81._o for_o 26._o read_v 96._o p_o 106_o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d read_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d p_o 111._o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d read_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d p._n 111._o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d read_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d p._n 136._o for_o 92_o read_v c._n 92_o p._n 140_o for_o mandatur_fw-la read_v mandantur_fw-la p._n 143._o for_o c._n ââ_o read_v 3â_n p._n 144._o for_o fidelâ_n read_v fidelibus_fw-la p._n 147_o for_o p._n 164._o read_v p._n 156._o p._n 149._o for_o hom_n 3._o read_v hom_n 31._o p._n 159._o for_o mat._n 12._o read_v mat._n 2._o add_v p._n â0_n l_o 14._o all_o that_o be_v inspire_v be_v preach_v p._n 27_o l._n 23._o blot_n out_o the_o comma_n between_o eucharist_n fast_v and_o between_o person_n christ._n p._n 144._o l._n 30._o and_o after_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d pag_n 36_o mark_fw-mi
which_o i_o will_v brief_o repeat_v by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o speaker_n by_o the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o doctrine_n in_o the_o conscience_n by_o the_o simplicity_n and_o purity_n of_o the_o stile_n by_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o prediction_n by_o the_o agreement_n in_o all_o thing_n though_o write_v by_o sundry_a person_n in_o sundry_a place_n and_o at_o sundry_a time_n by_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o and_o by_o the_o testimony_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v unto_o the_o 27._o the_o luc._n 24._o 27._o old_a testament_n 16._o testament_n 2._o pet._n â_o 16._o s._n peter_n to_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o whole_a 17._o whole_a 2._o tim._n 3._o 17._o scripture_n by_o all_o these_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a and_o credible_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n these_o be_v sufficient_a argument_n to_o beget_v a_o acquire_v faith_n in_o any_o man_n if_o the_o 4._o the_o 2._o cor._n 4._o 4._o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v not_o blind_v his_o eye_n so_o that_o he_o can_v 1â_n can_v psal_n 119._o 1â_n see_v the_o wonderful_a thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n the_o natural_a man_n be_v blind_a and_o 14._o and_o 1._o cor._n 2._o 14._o perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n by_o his_o active_a understanding_n neither_o can_v he_o conceive_v they_o by_o his_o passive_a understanding_n although_o they_o be_v most_o evident_o reveal_v and_o therefore_o god_n work_v in_o his_o own_o a_o infuse_a faith_n and_o open_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v see_v and_o believe_v this_o truth_n there_o be_v 80._o be_v in_o scripture_n est_fw-la sol_fw-la justitiae_fw-la august_n in_o psal_n 80._o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v a_o blind_a man_n can_v see_v this_o sun_n no_o more_o than_o a_o blind_a man_n can_v see_v the_o sun_n in_o the_o heaven_n as_o therefore_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n must_v be_v light_n that_o it_o may_v see_v the_o sun_n so_o must_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v spiritual_o illuminate_v that_o it_o may_v see_v this_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n this_o be_v wrought_v outward_o by_o the_o word_n which_o 8._o which_o psal_n 19_o 8._o give_v light_n unto_o the_o eye_n and_o inward_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o 11._o which_o 1._o cor._n 2._o 11._o only_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o work_v this_o by_o 1._o by_o origen_n de_fw-fr principijs_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 1._o work_v upon_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o understanding_n as_o ovigen_n say_v and_o when_o the_o heart_n be_v purify_v that_o a_o man_n do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n than_o he_o shall_v 17._o shall_v joh._n 7._o 17._o know_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n or_o no._n and_o as_o a_o friend_n know_v the_o voice_n of_o his_o friend_n so_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n know_v his_o 4._o his_o cant._n â_o â_o joh._n 10._o 4._o voice_n these_o be_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o know_v what_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o which_o be_v counterfeit_a and_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o this_o truth_n we_o do_v likewise_o allow_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n these_o caution_n remember_v 1._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v one_o but_o not_o the_o only_a mean_n he_o that_o know_v the_o sun_n to_o be_v the_o sun_n only_o because_o he_o be_v tell_v so_o and_o he_o that_o know_v his_o horse_n to_o be_v his_o horse_n only_o because_o the_o ostler_n tell_v he_o so_o be_v as_o wise_a a_o man_n as_o he_o that_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o scripture_n but_o only_o because_o holy_a church_n tell_v he_o so_o i_o will_v demand_v one_o thing_n of_o this_o jesuite_n if_o a_o man_n deny_v the_o scripture_n will_v he_o not_o convince_v he_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o testify_v for_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o he_o deny_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n will_v he_o not_o convince_v he_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o testify_v for_o the_o church_n thus_o be_v he_o force_v to_o dance_v in_o a_o circle_n and_o in_o the_o end_n to_o bring_v all_o conclusion_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n we_o rather_o hold_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o then_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o to_o know_v the_o scripture_n so_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a work_n upon_o matthew_n 49._o matthew_n anteâ_n multis_fw-la modis_fw-la âstendebaâur_fw-la quae_fw-la esset_fw-la ecclesia_n christ_n &_o quae_fw-la gentilitas_fw-la nunâ_n autem_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la cognos_fw-la cituâ_n volentibus_fw-la cogâoscere_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christâ_n nisi_fw-la tantummodò_fw-la per_fw-la scripturas_fw-la hom._n 49._o in_o former_a time_n there_o be_v many_o way_n whereby_o to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o be_v gentilism_n but_o now_o if_o a_o man_n will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o to_o know_v it_o and_o s._n augustine_n show_v we_o where_o we_o must_v seek_v for_o the_o church_n 16_o church_n in_o prâscripto_o legis_fw-la in_fw-la pro_fw-la phetarum_fw-la praedictis_fw-la in_o psal_n morum_fw-la âantibuâ_n in_o ipsius_fw-la pastoris_fw-la vocibus_fw-la in_fw-la evargelistarum_fw-la praedicationibus_fw-la &_o laboribus_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la canonicis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la librorum_fw-la authoritaâibus_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la eccles_n c._n 16_o in_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o psalm_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o pastor_n himself_o in_o the_o sermon_n and_o labour_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v in_o the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n 2._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o mean_n to_o declare_v which_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o not_o to_o make_v the_o scripture_n canonical_a as_o he_o that_o declare_v ignatius_n to_o be_v canonize_v for_o a_o saint_n do_v not_o thereby_o canonize_v he_o it_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n not_o a_o priori_fw-la but_o à _fw-la posteriori_fw-la as_o when_o the_o goldsmith_n declare_v the_o gold_n to_o be_v good_a but_o the_o romanist_n speak_v most_o disgraceful_o of_o the_o scripture_n prolegom_n scripture_n scripturas_fw-la valere_fw-la quantum_fw-la fabulae_fw-la aesopi_n si_fw-la destituantur_fw-la authoritate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la heâman_n apud_fw-la breut_n in_o prolegom_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o better_a than_o aesopes_n fable_n if_o they_o want_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 12_o church_n se_fw-la non_fw-la plus_fw-la fidei_fw-la adhibiturum_fw-la quam_fw-la tito_n livio_n gul._n bailius_n catech._n contr_n tract_n 1._o q_o 12_o they_o will_v believe_v they_o no_o more_o than_o titus_n livy_n thus_o i_o have_v make_v good_a my_o promise_n and_o have_v run_v the_o wild_a goose_n chase_v after_o this_o gagler_n in_o these_o three_o section_n who_o at_o last_o see_v his_o fault_n that_o all_o this_o while_n he_o have_v answer_v nothing_o that_o have_v be_v object_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v time_n for_o he_o to_o examine_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v produce_v against_o unwritten_a tradition_n in_o reexamine_v of_o what_o he_o have_v examine_v it_o shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o sect_n v._o the_o jesuite_n use_v most_o silly_a shift_n in_o answer_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v produce_v against_o unwritten_a tradition_n the_o three_o observation_n gather_v by_o the_o jesuite_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o section_n be_v already_o answer_v and_o therefore_o i_o need_v not_o actum_fw-la agere_fw-la yet_o i_o will_v be_v content_a to_o give_v they_o a_o touch_v answer_n first_n the_o tradition_n which_o we_o maintain_v 127._o reply_v p._n 127._o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v precept_n or_o commandment_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n himself_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o proceed_v immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 1._o be_v your_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n your_o solemn_a baptise_v of_o bell_n your_o friday_n fast_a and_o the_o like_a can_v you_o prove_v their_o original_n to_o be_v immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n second_o that_o the_o like_o our_o tradition_n be_v not_o any_o 128._o reply_v pag._n 128._o way_n contrary_a or_o repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o there_o be_v neither_o sense_n nor_o truth_n in_o this_o observation_n the_o like_a our_o tradition_n be_v not_o be_v none_o sense_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n that_o it_o be_v a_o
be_v lose_v contain_v only_o leviora_fw-la thing_n of_o little_a account_n 4_o account_n si_fw-mi canonici_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la libri_fw-la extitissent_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la fuisset_fw-la depositi_fw-la sibi_fw-la traditi_fw-la à _fw-la deo_fw-la fidelis_fw-la custos_fw-la juxta_fw-la illud_fw-la 1._o tim._n 6._o oh_o timoth_n depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la etc._n etc._n salmeron_n prolog_n 9_o caâ_n 4_o if_o these_o book_n say_v salmeron_n have_v be_v canonical_a the_o church_n have_v not_o be_v a_o faithful_a keeper_n of_o that_o which_o god_n commit_v to_o she_o according_a to_o that_o oh_o timothy_n keep_v that_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o it_o can_v then_o stand_v with_o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v custes_n rotulorum_fw-la the_o keeper_n of_o god_n oracle_n that_o any_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v be_v lose_v 1_o lose_v staplet_n defence_n occle_n author_n count_v whitak_n l._n 2._o c._n 1_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n which_o never_o fail_v in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n say_v stapleton_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o church_n be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v blame_v if_o she_o shall_v lose_v a_o book_n of_o scripture_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v lose_v a_o sacrament_n but_o that_o we_o may_v wrestle_v the_o jesuite_n with_o his_o wrestle_a argument_n let_v he_o answer_v this_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n and_o the_o church_n by_o her_o care_n have_v preserve_v the_o volume_n of_o the_o write_a word_n whole_a and_o entire_a so_o that_o not_o one_o book_n of_o it_o be_v lose_v but_o many_o volume_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v lose_v and_o perish_v witness_v the_o five_o book_n which_o egesippus_fw-la write_v of_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o the_o apostle_n leave_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o which_o the_o 2._o the_o sect._n 2._o jesuite_n allege_v against_o we_o and_o the_o book_n write_v by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n of_o the_o same_o subject_n neither_o be_v the_o jesuite_n able_a to_o tell_v we_o what_o particular_a tradition_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o book_n with_o we_o therefore_o the_o rule_n of_o say_v remain_v whole_a &_o entire_a but_o part_n of_o their_o rule_n be_v lose_v and_o perish_v and_o thus_o our_o doctrine_n stand_v firm_a and_o sure_a notwithstanding_o all_o the_o shift_n and_o cunning_a wind_n of_o this_o jesuite_n there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n perfectio_fw-la integralis_fw-la of_o the_o whole_a volume_n of_o scripture_n not_o one_o book_n of_o it_o be_v lose_v and_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n perfectio_fw-la finalis_fw-la for_o the_o church_n not_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o one_o good_a work_n be_v there_o but_o it_o may_v be_v learn_v by_o the_o scripture_n this_o one_o testimony_n of_o s._n paul_n i_o prefer_v before_o the_o testimony_n of_o any_o father_n yet_o because_o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v by_o the_o scripture_n give_v out_o that_o the_o father_n be_v they_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v 39_o do_v joh._n 8._o 39_o that_o abraham_n be_v our_o father_n we_o will_v therefore_o be_v content_a to_o put_v ourselves_o to_o be_v try_v by_o god_n and_o the_o country_n not_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o by_o the_o father_n who_o verdict_n be_v return_v in_o the_o next_o section_n sect_n vi_o wherein_o the_o jesuite_n produce_v senseless_a exception_n against_o the_o jury_n of_o the_o father_n give_v their_o verdict_n against_o he_o your_o master_n have_v tell_v you_o that_o you_o disagree_v 135._o reply_v p._n 135._o from_o the_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o father_n 1._o i_o can_v tell_v you_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o manner_n sake_n that_o you_o lie_v notorious_o you_o read_v this_o on_o the_o backside_n of_o constantine_n his_o donation_n or_o of_o some_o of_o your_o golden_a legend_n for_o i_o be_o sure_a none_o of_o our_o writer_n tell_v we_o so_o name_n one_o if_o you_o can_v among_o our_o many_o writer_n that_o do_v acknowledge_v our_o disagreement_n from_o the_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o father_n in_o this_o point_n and_o if_o you_o can_v we_o may_v easy_o judge_v how_o you_o will_v deal_v with_o the_o ancient_a father_n when_o you_o deal_v thus_o with_o our_o late_a writer_n this_o be_v but_o a_o jesuitical_a fiction_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o our_o writer_n in_o combat_v with_o you_o about_o unwritten_a tradition_n have_v fight_v against_o you_o at_o this_o weapon_n and_o have_v bring_v into_o the_o field_n these_o champion_n of_o the_o truth_n help_v to_o bring_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n the_o tower_n of_o babel_n this_o sort_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n 2._o tertullian_n be_v the_o foreman_n of_o the_o jury_n concern_v who_o the_o answerer_n confess_v that_o he_o be_v a_o earnest_a advocate_n for_o ritual_a tradition_n unwritten_a and_o for_o doctrinal_a tradition_n write_v etc._n etc._n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jesuite_n this_o distinction_n of_o ritual_a and_o doctrinal_a tradition_n serve_v to_o no_o purpose_n it_o serve_v for_o the_o true_a state_v of_o this_o question_n it_o discover_v the_o jesuites_n false_a state_v of_o this_o question_n of_o ritual_a tradition_n only_o and_o it_o show_v his_o folly_n in_o heap_v up_o a_o number_n of_o father_n defend_v ritual_a tradition_n unwritten_a for_o such_o be_v allow_v in_o our_o church_n but_o why_o serve_v it_o to_o no_o purpose_n because_o both_o of_o they_o may_v be_v apostolical_a 135_o reply_v pag._n 135_o and_o be_v to_o be_v regard_v as_o the_o write_a word_n and_o worthy_a of_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o same_o author_n be_v there_o no_o ritual_a ecclesiastical_a tradition_n to_o which_o you_o give_v the_o same_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o to_o the_o write_a word_n can_v those_o be_v apostolical_a or_o be_v they_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o although_o all_o ritual_a tradition_n be_v from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v as_o the_o write_a word_n all_o that_o the_o pope_n say_v be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v as_o his_o cathedral_n voice_n all_o that_o his_o majesty_n say_v be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v as_o his_o law_n and_o statute_n the_o authority_n of_o thing_n deliver_v may_v be_v different_a although_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o same_o author_n â_o author_n sect._n 1_o devil_n â_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o deliverer_n or_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o matter_n deliver_v may_v make_v the_o thing_n deliver_v more_o worthy_a of_o faith_n for_o this_o be_v certain_a there_o may_v be_v a_o proposition_n believe_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o author_n deliver_v &_o yet_o the_o matter_n deliver_v may_v be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n yet_o tertullian_n have_v to_o deal_v with_o hermogenes_n the_o heretic_n in_o a_o question_n concern_v the_o faith_n press_v he_o with_o answer_n the_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-la 22._o negatiuè_fw-la tertul._n advers._fw-la hermog_v â_o 22._o whether_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v of_o any_o subject_a matter_n i_o have_v as_o yet_o read_v not_o where_o let_v those_o of_o hermogenes_n his_o shop_n show_v that_o it_o be_v write_v if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v he_o fear_v that_o wâe_n which_o be_v allot_v to_o such_o as_o add_v or_o take_v away_o the_o jesuite_n paint_v out_o a_o answer_n unto_o this_o and_o colour_v it_o with_o false_a gloss_n as_o if_o he_o have_v get_v some_o relic_n out_o of_o hermogenes_n his_o paint_a shop_n it_o will_v be_v too_o tedious_a to_o lay_v down_o all_o his_o word_n but_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o first_n this_o be_v no_o thing_n against_o we_o unless_o we_o shall_v hold_v that_o 136._o reply_v pag._n 136._o all_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n only_o and_o none_o at_o all_o by_o scripture_n for_o what_o if_o he_o press_v the_o heretic_n hermogenes_n in_o one_o point_n with_o the_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-la must_v it_o follow_v that_o therefore_o he_o think_v all_o point_n may_v be_v prove_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n the_o boy_n of_o the_o logic_n school_n do_v know_v that_o a_o inference_n universal_a be_v absurd_o deduce_v from_o particular_a premise_n have_v not_o the_o jesuite_n tell_v we_o 126._o we_o pag._n 126._o they_o that_o deny_v unwritten_a tradition_n can_v have_v no_o sure_a ground_n for_o their_o faith_n the_o pope_n infallibility_n be_v the_o α_n and_o Ï_fw-gr the_o formal_a reason_n and_o only_o persuasive_a demonstration_n of_o a_o papist_n faith_n for_o although_o materiale_a fidei_fw-la the_o thing_n which_o he_o believe_v be_v a_o write_a doctrine_n yet_o firmale_a fiaei_fw-la or_o ratio_fw-la credendi_fw-la the_o reason_n why_o he_o believe_v it_o be_v because_o the_o pope_n say_v it_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o write_a word_n
of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v that_o word_n and_o that_o these_o and_o those_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n unless_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n say_v it_o and_o if_o he_o say_v it_o it_o be_v believe_v because_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la be_v not_o this_o a_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o which_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v prove_v he_o that_o true_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v not_o believe_v any_o point_n of_o his_o faith_n because_o he_o believe_v the_o pope_n have_v decree_v it_o aright_o in_o decree_a iâ_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v in_o they_o contain_v but_o he_o must_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n because_o the_o pope_n say_v so_o be_v not_o this_o to_o teach_v that_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o none_o at_o all_o by_o scripture_n we_o confess_v that_o in_o humane_a writing_n this_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-la be_v not_o of_o sufficient_a force_n because_o non_fw-la omne_fw-la vidit_fw-la bernardus_n neither_o in_o the_o divine_a writ_n be_v it_o of_o force_n against_o ritual_a tradition_n yet_o it_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n against_o he_o that_o hold_v any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v unwritten_a aswell_o as_o it_o be_v against_o he_o that_o hold_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v unwritten_a admit_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o then_o indeed_o the_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-la be_v of_o no_o force_n because_o tradition-monger_n may_v answer_v all_z points_z of_o faith_n be_v not_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o see_v the_o scripture_n make_v use_v of_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n as_o in_o prove_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n to_o excel_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o angel_n because_o 5._o because_o hebâ_n 1._o 5._o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o any_o of_o the_o angel_n thou_o be_v my_o sânne_n this_o day_n beget_v i_o thou_o see_v the_o father_n make_v use_v of_o it_o as_o 1._o as_o iren._n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o irenaeus_n levit._n irenaeus_n origen_n boâ_n 5._o in_o levit._n origeâ_n 132._o origeâ_n hilar._n in_o psal_n 132._o hillary_n 6._o hillary_n august_n count_v liâer_o petil._n l._n 30_o c._n 6._o augustine_n helvid_n augustine_n hierom_n count_v helvid_n hierome_n and_o now_o tertullian_n yea_o see_a our_o adversary_n themselves_o make_v use_v of_o it_o as_o 16._o as_o bellarm_n l._n 1_o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 16._o bellarmine_n and_o the_o 177._o the_o pag._n 177._o jesuit_n how_o then_o can_v this_o be_v true_a that_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v of_o force_n only_o against_o they_o that_o hold_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n only_o and_o none_o at_o all_o by_o scripture_n in_o all_o these_o place_n it_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a point_n which_o be_v handle_v and_o all_o of_o they_o depend_v upon_o this_o universal_a proposition_n that_o which_o be_v not_o write_v be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o in_o this_o of_o tertullian_n in_o which_o the_o jesuite_n chop_v logic_n like_o one_o that_o may_v talk_v of_o robin_n hoâds_v butt_n and_o never_o shoot_v in_o his_o bow_n in_o this_o i_o say_v the_o boy_n of_o the_o logic_n school_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o premise_n be_v particular_a for_o then_o tertullian_n have_v no_o skill_n in_o logic_n to_o argue_v thus_o some_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o read_v be_v to_o be_v reject_v this_o be_v not_o read_v therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v let_v the_o jesuitâ_n with_o all_o his_o logic_n if_o he_o have_v any_o frame_v tertullians_n argument_n into_o a_o syllogism_n true_a both_o in_o mood_n and_o figure_n that_o we_o may_v see_v for_o our_o learning_n whether_o the_o premise_n will_v be_v particular_a and_o the_o inference_n universal_a and_o not_o rather_o contrary_a the_o premise_n universal_a and_o the_o inference_n particular_a thus_o tertullian_n dispute_v against_o hermogenes_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o write_v be_v accurse_v this_o be_v not_o write_v therefore_o it_o be_v accurse_v in_o like_a manner_n we_o dispute_v out_o of_o tertullian_n against_o unwritten_a traditioâs_n by_o the_o same_o general_a medium_n whatsoever_o be_v unwritten_a be_v accurse_v the_o tradition_n which_o we_o oppose_v be_v unwritten_a therefore_o they_o be_v accurse_v second_o we_o confess_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v maintain_v contrary_a 136._o reply_v p._n 136._o to_o the_o express_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o see_v in_o this_o error_n of_o hermogenes_n than_o the_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negative_a may_n right_o be_v press_v according_a to_o this_o example_n of_o tertullian_n by_o you_o produce_v some_o of_o your_o tradition_n be_v of_o this_o nature_n as_o your_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o your_o halfe-communion_n the_o one_o express_o contrary_a to_o the_o second_o commandment_n and_o the_o other_o express_o contrary_a to_o this_o text_n 27._o text_n math._n 26._o 27._o drink_v yâe_n all_o of_o this_o and_o if_o this_o answer_n be_v sound_a that_o the_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-la be_v only_o to_o be_v press_v against_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v defend_v contrary_a to_o express_v scripture_n why_o then_o do_v the_o father_n former_o name_v use_v it_o against_o such_o opinion_n as_o be_v defend_v not_o contrary_a to_o any_o express_a text_n of_o scripture_n tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_n out_o of_o which_o present_o you_o shall_v hear_v the_o jesuite_n dispute_v use_v this_o kind_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o a_o christian_n may_v not_o we_o be_v a_o crown_n or_o garland_n on_o his_o head_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v because_o the_o scripture_n command_v it_o not_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o any_o express_a text_n of_o scripture_n why_o do_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n use_v this_o kind_n of_o argument_n not_o only_o against_o we_o in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 16._o supremacy_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr roâ_n pont._n l._n 1._o c._n 16._o because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o only_o unto_o peter_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la but_o also_o against_o the_o greek_a liturgy_n 13_o liturgy_n bellarm_n the_o âuââ_n 21._o l._n 4._o c._n 13_o because_o many_o thing_n in_o they_o be_v not_o command_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o why_o do_v m._n malone_n himself_o use_v it_o against_o we_o 117._o we_o pag._n 117._o where_o do_v we_o read_v that_o christ_n give_v any_o commandment_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o write_v his_o gospel_n and_o where_o be_v we_o command_v to_o read_v iâ_n yet_o neither_o the_o writing_n of_o it_o neither_o the_o read_n of_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o any_o express_a text_n of_o scripture_n maintain_v what_o you_o will_v as_o a_o point_n of_o salvation_n that_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v either_o express_o or_o by_o firm_a consequence_n in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v threaten_v with_o a_o wâe_n and_o it_o may_v be_v condemn_v with_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n 12._o argument_n isa_n l._n 1._o 12._o who_o require_v this_o at_o your_o hand_n not_o only_o direct_a murder_n express_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n but_o likewise_o pretend_a religion_n in_o burn_a child_n in_o the_o valley_n of_o ben-hinnââ_a be_v condemn_v by_o god_n himself_o because_o 31._o because_o jereâ_n 7._o 31._o it_o be_v that_o which_o he_o command_v they_o not_o such_o thing_n across_o the_o perfection_n of_o scripture_n and_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o those_o thing_n which_o across_o the_o verity_n of_o it_o in_o the_o part_n the_o seâ_n that_o of_o appeal_n answer_v in_o the_o former_a part_n last_o place_n he_o oppose_v those_o thing_n which_o tercullian_n write_v when_o he_o be_v not_o a_o man_n of_o the_o church_n but_o a_o heretic_n against_o this_o which_o he_o write_v against_o a_o heretic_n 137_o reply_v pag._n 137_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v many_o point_n militis_fw-la point_n teâââ_n de_fw-fr coronâ_n militis_fw-la which_o we_o dââ_n hold_v without_o any_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n only_o by_o the_o tittle_n of_o tradition_n defend_v by_o the_o patronage_n of_o custom_n and_o if_o thou_o demaunde_v authority_n for_o these_o out_o of_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v get_v none_o at_o all_o tradition_n shall_v be_v assign_v for_o the_o author_n use_n and_o custom_n for_o the_o conformer_n and_o faith_n for_o the_o observer_n of_o they_o by_o these_o example_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v confirm_v that_o the_o use_n and_o observation_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n may_v be_v defend_v unto_o this_o he_o add_v a_o observation_n of_o his_o own_o behold_v now_o how_o this_o place_n produce_v by_o our_o answerer_n out_o of_o tertullian_n against_o unwritten_a tradition_n